WHILE THE BILLY BOILS
by Henry Lawson
[Transcriber’s note: In
‘A Day on a Selection’ a speech is attributed to “Tom”—in first edition as well
as recent ones—which clearly belongs to “Corney” alias “neighbour”. This has
been noted in loc.]
CONTENTS
First Series: 1.An Old
Mate of your father’s 2.Settling on the
Land 3.Enter Mitchel 4.Stiffner and Jim 5.When the Sun went Down 6.The Man Who Forgot 7.Hungerford
8.A Camp-Fire Yarn 9.His
Country-After All 10.A Day on a
Selection 11.That There Dog O’Mine 12.Going Blind
13.Arvie Aspinall’s Alarm Clock
14.Stragglers 15.The Union Buries
Its Dead 16.On the Edge of a Plain 17.In a Dry Season 18.He’d Come Back 19.Another of Mitchell’s Plans for the
Future 20.Steelman 21.Drifted Back 22.Remailed
23.Mitchell Doesn’t Believe in the Sack
24.Shooting the Moon 25.His
Father’s Mate 26.An Echo From the Old
Bark School 27.The Shearing of the
Cook’s Dog 28.”Dossing Out” and
“Camping” 29.Across the Straits 30.”Some Day”
31.”Brummy Usen”
Second Series: 1.The
Drover’s Wife 2.Steelman’s Pupil 3.An Unfinished Love Story 4.Board and Residence 5.His Colonial Oath 6.A Visit of Condolence 7.In a Wet Season 8.”Rats”
9.Mitchell: A Character Sketch
10.The Bush Undertaker 11.Our
Pipes 12.Coming Across 13.The Story of Malachi 14.Two Dogs and a Fence 15.Jones’s Alley 16.Bogg of Geebung 17.She Wouldn’t Speak 18.The Geological Spieler 19.Macquarie’s Mate 20.Baldy Thompson 21.For Auld Lang Syne 22.Notes on Australianisms |
FIRST SERIES
You remember when we
hurried home from the old bush school how we were sometimes startled by a
bearded apparition, who smiled kindly down on us, and whom our mother
introduced, as we raked off our hats, as “An old mate of your father’s on the
diggings, Johnny.” And he would pat our heads and say we were fine boys, or
girls—as the case may have been—and that we had our father’s nose but our
mother’s eyes, or the other way about; and say that the baby was the dead spit
of its mother, and then added, for father’s benefit: “But yet he’s like you,
Tom.” It did seem strange to the children to hear him address the old man by
his Christian name—-considering that the mother always referred to him as
“Father.” She called the old mate Mr So-and-so, and father called him Bill, or
something to that effect.
Occasionally the old
mate would come dressed in the latest city fashion, and at other times in a new
suit of reach-me-downs, and yet again he would turn up in clean white
moleskins, washed tweed coat, Crimean shirt, blucher boots, soft felt hat, with
a fresh-looking speckled handkerchief round his neck. But his face was mostly
round and brown and jolly, his hands were always horny, and his beard grey.
Sometimes he might have seemed strange and uncouth to us at first, but the old
man never appeared the least surprised at anything he said or did—they
understood each other so well—and we would soon take to this relic of our
father’s past, who would have fruit or lollies for us—strange that he always
remembered them—and would surreptitiously slip “shilluns” into our dirty little
hands, and tell us stories about the old days, “when me an’ yer father was on
the diggin’s, an’ you wasn’t thought of, my boy.”
Sometimes the old mate
would stay over Sunday, and in the forenoon or after dinner he and father would
take a walk amongst the deserted shafts of Sapling Gully or along Quartz Ridge,
and criticize old ground, and talk of past diggers’ mistakes, and second
bottoms, and feelers, and dips, and leads—also outcrops—and absently pick up
pieces of quartz and slate, rub them on their sleeves, look at them in an
abstracted manner, and drop them again; and they would talk of some old lead
they had worked on: “Hogan’s party was here on one side of us, Macintosh was
here on the other, Mac was getting good gold and so was Hogan, and now, why the
blanky blank weren’t we on gold?” And the mate would always agree that there
was “gold in them ridges and gullies yet, if a man only had the money behind
him to git at it.” And then perhaps the guv’nor would show him a spot where he
intended to put down a shaft some day—the old man was always thinking of putting
down a shaft. And these two old fifty-niners would mooch round and sit on their
heels on the sunny mullock heaps and break clay lumps between their hands, and
lay plans for the putting down of shafts, and smoke, till an urchin was sent to
“look for his father and Mr So-and-so, and tell ’em to come to their dinner.”
And again—mostly in the
fresh of the morning—they would hang about the fences on the selection and
review the live stock: five dusty skeletons of cows, a hollow-sided calf or
two, and one shocking piece of equine scenery—which, by the way, the old mate
always praised. But the selector’s heart was not in farming nor on
selections—it was far away with the last new rush in Western Australia or
Queensland, or perhaps buried in the worked-out ground of Tambaroora, Married
Man’s Creek, or Araluen; and by-and-by the memory of some half-forgotten reef
or lead or Last Chance, Nil Desperandum, or Brown Snake claim would take their
thoughts far back and away from the dusty patch of sods and struggling sprouts
called the crop, or the few discouraged, half-dead slips which comprised the
orchard. Then their conversation would be pointed with many Golden Points,
Bakery Hill, Deep Creeks, Maitland Bars, Specimen Flats, and Chinamen’s
Gullies. And so they’d yarn till the youngster came to tell them that “Mother
sez the breakfus is gettin’ cold,” and then the old mate would rouse himself
and stretch and say, “Well, we mustn’t keep the missus waitin’, Tom!”
And, after tea, they
would sit on a log of the wood-heap, or the edge of the veranda—that is, in
warm weather—and yarn about Ballarat and Bendigo—of the days when we spoke of
being on a place oftener than at it: on Ballarat, on Gulgong, on Lambing
Flat, on Creswick—and they would use the definite article before the
names, as: “on The Turon; The Lachlan; The Home Rule; The Canadian Lead.” Then
again they’d yarn of old mates, such as Tom Brook, Jack Henright, and poor
Martin Ratcliffe—who was killed in his golden hole—and of other men whom they
didn’t seem to have known much about, and who went by the names of “Adelaide
Adolphus,” “Corney George,” and other names which might have been more or less
applicable.
And sometimes they’d get
talking, low and mysterious like, about “Th’ Eureka Stockade;” and if we didn’t
understand and asked questions, “what was the Eureka Stockade?” or “what did
they do it for?” father’d say: “Now, run away, sonny, and don’t bother; me and
Mr So-and-so want to talk.” Father had the mark of a hole on his leg, which he
said he got through a gun accident when a boy, and a scar on his side, that we
saw when he was in swimming with us; he said he got that in an accident in a
quartz-crushing machine. Mr So-and-so had a big scar on the side of his
forehead that was caused by a pick accidentally slipping out of a loop in the
rope, and falling down a shaft where he was working. But how was it they talked
low, and their eyes brightened up, and they didn’t look at each other, but away
over sunset, and had to get up and walk about, and take a stroll in the cool of
the evening when they talked about Eureka?
And, again they’d talk
lower and more mysterious like, and perhaps mother would be passing the
wood-heap and catch a word, and asked:
“Who was she, Tom?”
And Tom—father—would
say:
“Oh, you didn’t know her,
Mary; she belonged to a family Bill knew at home.”
And Bill would look
solemn till mother had gone, and then they would smile a quiet smile, and
stretch and say, “Ah, well!” and start something else.
They had yarns for the
fireside, too, some of those old mates of our father’s, and one of them would
often tell how a girl—a queen of the diggings—was married, and had her
wedding-ring made out of the gold of that field; and how the diggers weighed
their gold with the new wedding-ring—for luck—by hanging the ring on the hook
of the scales and attaching their chamois-leather gold bags to it (whereupon
she boasted that four hundred ounces of the precious metal passed through her
wedding-ring); and how they lowered the young bride, blindfolded, down a golden
hole in a big bucket, and got her to point out the drive from which the gold
came that her ring was made out of. The point of this story seems to have been
lost—or else we forget it—but it was characteristic. Had the girl been lowered
down a duffer, and asked to point out the way to the gold, and had she done so
successfully, there would have been some sense in it.
And they would talk of
King, and Maggie Oliver, and G. V. Brooke, and others, and remember how the
diggers went five miles out to meet the coach that brought the girl actress,
and took the horses out and brought her in in triumph, and worshipped her, and
sent her off in glory, and threw nuggets into her lap. And how she stood upon
the box-seat and tore her sailor hat to pieces, and threw the fragments amongst
the crowd; and how the diggers fought for the bits and thrust them inside their
shirt bosoms; and how she broke down and cried, and could in her turn have
worshipped those men—loved them, every one. They were boys all, and gentlemen
all. There were college men, artists, poets, musicians, journalists—Bohemians
all. Men from all the lands and one. They understood art—and poverty was dead.
And perhaps the old mate
would say slyly, but with a sad, quiet smile:
“Have you got that bit
of straw yet, Tom?”
Those old mates had each
three pasts behind them. The two they told each other when they became mates,
and the one they had shared.
And when the visitor had
gone by the coach we noticed that the old man would smoke a lot, and think as
much, and take great interest in the fire, and be a trifle irritable perhaps.
Those old mates of our
father’s are getting few and far between, and only happen along once in a way
to keep the old man’s memory fresh, as it were. We met one to-day, and had a
yarn with him, and afterwards we got thinking, and somehow began to wonder
whether those ancient friends of ours were, or were not, better and kinder to
their mates than we of the rising generation are to our fathers; and the doubt
is painfully on the wrong side.
The worst bore in
Australia just now is the man who raves about getting the people on the land,
and button-holes you in the street with a little scheme of his own. He
generally does not know what he is talking about.
There is in Sydney a man
named Tom Hopkins who settled on the land once, and sometimes you can get him
to talk about it. He did very well at his trade in the city, years ago, until
he began to think that he could do better up-country. Then he arranged with his
sweetheart to be true to him and wait whilst he went west and made a home. She
drops out of the story at this point.
He selected on a run at
Dry Hole Creek, and for months awaited the arrival of the government surveyors
to fix his boundaries; but they didn’t come, and, as he had no reason to
believe they would turn up within the next ten years, he grubbed and fenced at
a venture, and started farming operations.
Does the reader know
what grubbing means? Tom does. He found the biggest, ugliest, and most useless
trees on his particular piece of ground; also the greatest number of adamantine
stumps. He started without experience, or with very little, but with plenty of
advice from men who knew less about farming than he did. He found a soft place
between two roots on one side of the first tree, made a narrow, irregular hole,
and burrowed down till he reached a level where the tap-root was somewhat less
than four feet in diameter, and not quite as hard as flint: then he found that
he hadn’t room to swing the axe, so he heaved out another ton or two of
earth—and rested. Next day he sank a shaft on the other side of the gum; and
after tea, over a pipe, it struck him that it would be a good idea to burn the
tree out, and so use up the logs and lighter rubbish lying round. So he widened
the excavation, rolled in some logs, and set fire to them—with no better result
than to scorch the roots.
Tom persevered. He put
the trace harness on his horse, drew in all the logs within half a mile, and
piled them on the windward side of that gum; and during the night the fire
found a soft place, and the tree burnt off about six feet above the surface,
falling on a squatter’s boundary fence, and leaving the ugliest kind of stump
to occupy the selector’s attention; which it did, for a week. He waited till the
hole cooled, and then he went to work with pick, shovel, and axe: and even now
he gets interested in drawings of machinery, such as are published in the
agricultural weeklies, for getting out stumps without graft. He thought he
would be able to get some posts and rails out of that tree, but found reason to
think that a cast-iron column would split sooner—and straighter. He traced some
of the surface roots to the other side of the selection, and broke most of his
trace-chains trying to get them out by horse-power—for they had other roots
going down from underneath. He cleared a patch in the course of time and for
several seasons he broke more ploughshares than he could pay for.
Meanwhile the squatter
was not idle. Tom’s tent was robbed several times, and his hut burnt down
twice. Then he was charged with killing some sheep and a steer on the run, and
converting them to his own use, but got off mainly because there was a
difference of opinion between the squatter and the other local J.P. concerning
politics and religion.
Tom ploughed and sowed
wheat, but nothing came up to speak of—the ground was too poor; so he carted
stable manure six miles from the nearest town, manured the land, sowed another
crop, and prayed for rain. It came. It raised a flood which washed the crop
clean off the selection, together with several acres of manure, and a
considerable portion of the original surface soil; and the water brought down
enough sand to make a beach, and spread it over the field to a depth of six
inches. The flood also took half a mile of fencing from along the creek-bank,
and landed it in a bend, three miles down, on a dummy selection, where it was
confiscated.
Tom didn’t give up—he
was energetic. He cleared another piece of ground on the siding, and sowed more
wheat; it had the rust in it, or the smut—and averaged three shillings per
bushel. Then he sowed lucerne and oats, and bought a few cows: he had an idea
of starting a dairy. First, the cows’ eyes got bad, and he sought the advice of
a German cocky, and acted upon it; he blew powdered alum through paper tubes
into the bad eyes, and got some of it snorted and butted back into his own. He
cured the cows’ eyes and got the sandy blight in his own, and for a week or so
be couldn’t tell one end of a cow from the other, but sat in a dark corner of
the hut and groaned, and soaked his glued eyelashes in warm water. Germany
stuck to him and nursed him, and saw him through.
Then the milkers got bad
udders, and Tom took his life in his hands whenever he milked them. He got them
all right presently—and butter fell to fourpence a pound. He and the aforesaid
cocky made arrangements to send their butter to a better market; and then the
cows contracted a disease which was known in those parts as “plooro
permoanyer,” but generally referred to as “th’ ploorer.”
Again Tom sought advice,
acting upon which he slit the cows’ ears, cut their tails half off to bleed
them, and poured pints of “pain killer” into them through their nostrils; but
they wouldn’t make an effort, except, perhaps, to rise and poke the selector
when he tried to tempt their appetites with slices of immature pumpkin. They
died peacefully and persistently, until all were gone save a certain dangerous,
barren, slab-sided luny bovine with white eyes and much agility in jumping
fences, who was known locally as Queen Elizabeth.
Tom shot Queen
Elizabeth, and turned his attention to agriculture again. Then his plough
horses took bad with some thing the Teuton called “der shtranguls.” He
submitted them to a course of treatment in accordance with Jacob’s advice—and
they died.
Even then Tom didn’t
give in—there was grit in that man. He borrowed a broken-down dray-horse in
return for its keep, coupled it with his own old riding hack, and started to
finish ploughing. The team wasn’t a success. Whenever the draught horse’s knees
gave way and he stumbled forward, he jerked the lighter horse back into the
plough, and something would break. Then Tom would blaspheme till he was
refreshed, mend up things with wire and bits of clothes-line, fill his pockets
with stones to throw at the team, and start again. Finally he hired a dummy’s
child to drive the horses. The brat did his best he tugged at the head of the
team, prodded it behind, heaved rocks at it, cut a sapling, got up his
enthusiasm, and wildly whacked the light horse whenever the other showed signs
of moving—but he never succeeded in starting both horses at one and the same
time. Moreover the youth was cheeky, and the selector’s temper had been soured:
he cursed the boy along with the horses, the plough, the selection, the
squatter, and Australia. Yes, he cursed Australia. The boy cursed back, was
chastised, and immediately went home and brought his father.
Then the dummy’s dog
tackled the selector’s dog and this precipitated things. The dummy would have
gone under had his wife not arrived on the scene with the eldest son and the
rest of the family. They all fell foul of Tom. The woman was the worst. The
selector’s dog chawed the other and came to his master’s rescue just in
time—-or Tom Hopkins would never have lived to become the inmate of a lunatic
asylum.
Next year there happened
to be good grass on Tom’s selection and nowhere else, and he thought it
wouldn’t be a bad idea—to get a few poor sheep, and fatten them up for market:
sheep were selling for about seven-and-sixpence a dozen at that time. Tom got a
hundred or two, but the squatter had a man stationed at one side of the
selection with dogs to set on the sheep directly they put their noses through
the fence (Tom’s was not a sheep fence). The dogs chased the sheep across the
selection and into the run again on the other side, where another man waited
ready to pound them.
Tom’s dog did his best;
but he fell sick while chawing up the fourth capitalistic canine, and
subsequently died. The dummies had robbed that cur with poison before starting
it across—that was the only way they could get at Tom’s dog.
Tom thought that two
might play at the game, and he tried; but his nephew, who happened to be up
from the city on a visit, was arrested at the instigation of the squatter for
alleged sheep-stealing, and sentenced to two years’ hard; during which time the
selector himself got six months for assaulting the squatter with intent to do
him grievous bodily harm-which, indeed, he more than attempted, if a broken
nose, a fractured jaw, and the loss of most of the squatters’ teeth amounted to
anything. The squatter by this time had made peace with the other local
Justice, and had become his father-in-law.
When Tom came out there
was little left for him to live for; but he took a job of fencing, got a few
pounds together, and prepared to settle on the land some more. He got a
“missus” and a few cows during the next year; the missus robbed him and ran
away with the dummy, and the cows died in the drought, or were impounded by the
squatter while on their way to water. Then Tom rented an orchard up the creek,
and a hailstorm destroyed all the fruit. Germany happened to be represented at
the time, Jacob having sought shelter at Tom’s but on his way home from town.
Tom stood leaning against the door post with the hail beating on him through it
all. His eyes were very bright and very dry, and every breath was a choking
sob. Jacob let him stand there, and sat inside with a dreamy expression on his
hard face, thinking of childhood and fatherland, perhaps. When it was over he
led Tom to a stool and said, “You waits there, Tom. I must go home for
somedings. You sits there still and waits twenty minutes;” then he got on his
horse and rode off muttering to himself; “Dot man moost gry, dot man moost
gry.” He was back inside of twenty minutes with a bottle of wine and a cornet
under his overcoat. He poured the wine into two pint-pots, made Tom drink,
drank himself, and then took his cornet, stood up at the door, and played a
German march into the rain after the retreating storm. The hail had passed over
his vineyard and he was a ruined man too. Tom did “gry” and was all right. He
was a bit disheartened, but he did another job of fencing, and was just
beginning to think about “puttin’ in a few vines an’ fruit-trees” when the
government surveyors—whom he’d forgotten all about—had a resurrection and came
and surveyed, and found that the real selection was located amongst some barren
ridges across the creek. Tom reckoned it was lucky he didn’t plant the orchard,
and he set about shifting his home and fences to the new site. But the squatter
interfered at this point, entered into possession of the farm and all on it,
and took action against the selector for trespass—laying the damages at L2500.
Tom was admitted to the
lunatic asylum at Parramatta next year, and the squatter was sent there the
following summer, having been ruined by the drought, the rabbits, the banks,
and a wool-ring. The two became very friendly, and had many a sociable argument
about the feasibility—or otherwise—of blowing open the flood-gates of Heaven in
a dry season with dynamite.
Tom was discharged a few
years since. He knocks about certain suburbs a good deal. He is seen in
daylight seldom, and at night mostly in connection with a dray and a lantern.
He says his one great regret is that he wasn’t found to be of unsound mind
before he went up-country.
The Western train had just arrived at
Redfern railway station with a lot of ordinary passengers and one swagman.
He was short, and stout,
and bow-legged, and freckled, and sandy. He had red hair and small, twinkling,
grey eyes, and—what often goes with such things—the expression of a born
comedian. He was dressed in a ragged, well-washed print shirt, an old black
waistcoat with a calico back, a pair of cloudy moleskins patched at the knees
and held up by a plaited greenhide belt buckled loosely round his hips, a pair
of well-worn, fuzzy blucher boots, and a soft felt hat, green with age, and with
no brim worth mentioning, and no crown to speak of. He swung a swag on to the
platform, shouldered it, pulled out a billy and water-bag, and then went to a
dog-box in the brake van.
Five minutes later he
appeared on the edge of the cab platform, with an anxious-looking cattle-dog
crouching against his legs, and one end of the chain in his hand. He eased down
the swag against a post, turned his face to the city, tilted his hat forward,
and scratched the well-developed back of his head with a little finger. He
seemed undecided what track to take.
“Cab, Sir!”
The swagman turned
slowly and regarded cabby with a quiet grin.
“Now, do I look as if I
want a cab?”
“Well, why not? No harm,
anyway—I thought you might want a cab.”
Swaggy scratched his
head, reflectively.
“Well,” he said, “you’re
the first man that has thought so these ten years. What do I want with a cab?”
“To go where you’re
going, of course.”
“Do I look knocked up?”
“I didn’t say you did.”
“And I didn’t say you
said I did.... Now, I’ve been on the track this five years. I’ve tramped two
thousan’ miles since last Chris’mas, and I don’t see why I can’t tramp the last
mile. Do you think my old dog wants a cab?”
The dog shivered and
whimpered; he seemed to want to get away from the crowd.
“But then, you see, you
ain’t going to carry that swag through the streets, are you?” asked the cabman.
“Why not? Who’ll stop
me! There ain’t no law agin it, I b’lieve?”
“But then, you see, it
don’t look well, you know.”
“Ah! I thought we’d get
to it at last.”
The traveller up-ended
his bluey against his knee, gave it an affectionate pat, and then straightened
himself up and looked fixedly at the cabman.
“Now, look here!” he
said, sternly and impressively, “can you see anything wrong with that old swag
o’ mine?”
It was a stout, dumpy
swag, with a red blanket outside, patched with blue, and the edge of a blue
blanket showing in the inner rings at the end. The swag might have been newer;
it might have been cleaner; it might have been hooped with decent straps,
instead of bits of clothes-line and greenhide—but otherwise there was nothing
the matter with it, as swags go.
“I’ve humped that old
swag for years,” continued the bushman; “I’ve carried that old swag thousands
of miles—as that old dog knows—an’ no one ever bothered about the look of it,
or of me, or of my old dog, neither; and do you think I’m going to be ashamed
of that old swag, for a cabby or anyone else? Do you think I’m going to study
anybody’s feelings? No one ever studied mine! I’m in two minds to summon you
for using insulting language towards me!”
He lifted the swag by
the twisted towel which served for a shoulder-strap, swung it into the cab, got
in himself and hauled the dog after him.
“You can drive me
somewhere where I can leave my swag and dog while I get some decent clothes to
see a tailor in,” he said to the cabman. “My old dog ain’t used to cabs, you
see.”
Then he added,
reflectively: “I drove a cab myself, once, for five years in Sydney.”
(Thirdly, Bill)
We were tramping down in Canterbury,
Maoriland, at the time, swagging it—me and Bill—looking for work on the new
railway line. Well, one afternoon, after a long, hot tramp, we comes to
Stiffner’s Hotel—between Christchurch and that other place—I forget the name of
it—with throats on us like sunstruck bones, and not the price of a stick of
tobacco.
We had to have a drink,
anyway, so we chanced it. We walked right into the bar, handed over our swags,
put up four drinks, and tried to look as if we’d just drawn our cheques and
didn’t care a curse for any man. We looked solvent enough, as far as swagmen
go. We were dirty and haggard and ragged and tired-looking, and that was all
the more reason why we might have our cheques all right.
This Stiffner was a hard
customer. He’d been a spieler, fighting man, bush parson, temperance preacher,
and a policeman, and a commercial traveller, and everything else that was
damnable; he’d been a journalist, and an editor; he’d been a lawyer, too. He
was an ugly brute to look at, and uglier to have a row with—about six-foot-six,
wide in proportion, and stronger than Donald Dinnie.
He was meaner than a
gold-field Chinaman, and sharper than a sewer rat: he wouldn’t give his own
father a feed, nor lend him a sprat—unless some safe person backed the old
man’s I.O.U.
We knew that we needn’t
expect any mercy from Stiffner; but something had to be done, so I said to
Bill:
“Something’s got to be
done, Bill! What do you think of it?”
Bill was mostly a quiet
young chap, from Sydney, except when he got drunk—which was seldom—and then he
was a customer, from all round. He was cracked on the subject of spielers. He
held that the population of the world was divided into two classes—one was
spielers and the other was the mugs. He reckoned that he wasn’t a mug. At first
I thought he was a spieler, and afterwards I thought that he was a mug. He used
to say that a man had to do it these times; that he was honest once and a fool,
and was robbed and starved in consequences by his friends and relations; but
now he intended to take all that he could get. He said that you either had to
have or be had; that men were driven to be sharps, and there was no help for
it.
Bill said:
“We’ll have to sharpen
our teeth, that’s all, and chew somebody’s lug.”
“How?” I asked.
There was a lot of
navvies at the pub, and I knew one or two by sight, so Bill says:
“You know one or two of
these mugs. Bite one of their ears.”
So I took aside a chap
that I knowed and bit his ear for ten bob, and gave it to Bill to mind, for I
thought it would be safer with him than with me.
“Hang on to that,” I
says, “and don’t lose it for your natural life’s sake, or Stiffner’ll stiffen
us.”
We put up about nine
bob’s worth of drinks that night—me and Bill—and Stiffner didn’t squeal: he was
too sharp. He shouted once or twice.
By-and-by I left Bill
and turned in, and in the morning when I woke up there was Bill sitting
alongside of me, and looking about as lively as the fighting kangaroo in London
in fog time. He had a black eye and eighteen pence. He’d been taking down some
of the mugs.
“Well, what’s to be done
now?” I asked. “Stiffner can smash us both with one hand, and if we don’t pay
up he’ll pound our swags and cripple us. He’s just the man to do it. He loves a
fight even more than he hates being had.”
“There’s only one thing to
be done, Jim,” says Bill, in a tired, disinterested tone that made me mad.
“Well, what’s than” I
said.
“Smoke!”
“Smoke be damned,” I
snarled, losing my temper.
“You know dashed well
that our swags are in the bar, and we can’t smoke without them.
“Well, then,” says Bill,
“I’ll toss you to see who’s to face the landlord.”
“Well, I’ll be blessed!”
I says. “I’ll see you further first. You have got a front. You mugged that
stuff away, and you’ll have to get us out of the mess.”
It made him wild to be
called a mug, and we swore and growled at each other for a while; but we
daren’t speak loud enough to have a fight, so at last I agreed to toss up for
it, and I lost.
Bill started to give me
some of his points, but I shut him up quick.
“You’ve had your turn,
and made a mess of it,” I said. “For God’s sake give me a show. Now, I’ll go
into the bar and ask for the swags, and carry them out on to the veranda, and
then go back to settle up. You keep him talking all the time. You dump the two
swags together, and smoke like sheol. That’s all you’ve got to do.”
I went into the bar, got
the swags front the missus, carried them out on to the veranda, and then went
back.
Stiffner came in.
“Good morning!”
“Good morning, sir,”
says Stiffner.
“It’ll be a nice day, I
think?”
“Yes, I think so. I
suppose you are going on?”
“Yes, we’ll have to make
a move to-day.”
Then I hooked carelessly
on to the counter with one elbow, and looked dreamy-like out across the
clearing, and presently I gave a sort of sigh and said: “Ah, well! I think I’ll
have a beer.”
“Right you are! Where’s
your mate?”
“Oh, he’s round at the
back. He’ll be round directly; but he ain’t drinking this morning.”
Stiffner laughed that
nasty empty laugh of his. He thought Bill was whipping the cat.
“What’s yours, boss?” I said.
“Thankee!... Here’s
luck!”
“Here’s luck!”
The country was pretty
open round there—the nearest timber was better than a mile away, and I wanted
to give Bill a good start across the flat before the go-as-you-can commenced;
so I talked for a while, and while we were talking I thought I might as well go
the whole hog—I might as well die for a pound as a penny, if I had to die; and
if I hadn’t I’d have the pound to the good, anyway, so to speak. Anyhow, the
risk would be about the same, or less, for I might have the spirit to run
harder the more I had to run for—the more spirits I had to run for, in fact, as
it turned out—so I says:
“I think I’ll take one
of them there flasks of whisky to last us on the road.”
“Right y’are,” says
Stiffner. “What’ll ye have—a small one or a big one?”
“Oh, a big one, I
think—if I can get it into my pocket.”
“It’ll be a tight
squeeze,” he said, and he laughed.
“I’ll try,” I said. “Bet
you two drinks I’ll get it in.”
“Done!” he says. “The
top inside coat-pocket, and no tearing.”
It was a big bottle, and
all my pockets were small; but I got it into the pocket he’d betted against. It
was a tight squeeze, but I got it in.
Then we both laughed,
but his laugh was nastier than usual, because it was meant to be pleasant, and
he’d lost two drinks; and my laugh wasn’t easy—I was anxious as to which of us
would laugh next.
Just then I noticed
something, and an idea struck me—about the most up-to-date idea that ever
struck me in my life. I noticed that Stiffner was limping on his right foot this
morning, so I said to him:
“What’s up with your
foot?” putting my hand in my pocket. “Oh, it’s a crimson nail in my boot,” he
said. “I thought I got the blanky thing out this morning; but I didn’t.”
There just happened to
be an old bag of shoemaker’s tools in the bar, belonging to an old cobbler who
was lying dead drunk on the veranda. So I said, taking my hand out of my pocket
again:
“Lend us the boot, and
I’ll fix it in a minute. That’s my old trade.”
“Oh, so you’re a
shoemaker,” he said. “I’d never have thought it.”
He laughs one of his
useless laughs that wasn’t wanted, and slips off the boot—he hadn’t laced it
up—and hands it across the bar to me. It was an ugly brute—a great thick,
iron-bound, boiler-plated navvy’s boot. It made me feel sore when I looked at
it.
I got the bag and
pretended to fix the nail; but I didn’t.
“There’s a couple of
nails gone from the sole,” I said. “I’ll put ’em in if I can find any hobnails,
and it’ll save the sole,” and I rooted in the bag and found a good long nail,
and shoved it right through the sole on the sly. He’d been a bit of a sprinter
in his time, and I thought it might be better for me in the near future if the
spikes of his running-shoes were inside.
“There, you’ll find that
better, I fancy,” I said, standing the boot on the bar counter, but keeping my
hand on it in an absent-minded kind of way. Presently I yawned and stretched
myself, and said in a careless way:
“Ah, well! How’s the
slate?” He scratched the back of his head and pretended to think.
“Oh, well, we’ll call it
thirty bob.”
Perhaps he thought I’d
slap down two quid.
“Well,” I says, “and
what will you do supposing we don’t pay you?”
He looked blank for a
moment. Then he fired up and gasped and choked once or twice; and then he
cooled down suddenly and laughed his nastiest laugh—he was one of those men who
always laugh when they’re wild—and said in a nasty, quiet tone:
“You thundering,
jumped-up crawlers! If you don’t (something) well part up I’ll take your swags
and (something) well kick your gory pants so you won’t be able to sit down for
a month—or stand up either!”
“Well, the sooner you
begin the better,” I said; and I chucked the boot into a corner and bolted.
He jumped the bar
counter, got his boot, and came after me. He paused to slip the boot on—but he
only made one step, and then gave a howl and slung the boot off and rushed
back. When I looked round again he’d got a slipper on, and was coming—and
gaining on me, too. I shifted scenery pretty quick the next five minutes. But I
was soon pumped. My heart began to beat against the ceiling of my head, and my
lungs all choked up in my throat. When I guessed he was getting within kicking
distance I glanced round so’s to dodge the kick. He let out; but I shied just
in time. He missed fire, and the slipper went about twenty feet up in the air
and fell in a waterhole.
He was done then, for
the ground was stubbly and stony. I seen Bill on ahead pegging out for the
horizon, and I took after him and reached for the timber for all I was worth,
for I’d seen Stiffner’s missus coming with a shovel—to bury the remains, I
suppose; and those two were a good match—Stiffner and his missus, I mean.
Bill looked round once,
and melted into the bush pretty soon after that. When I caught up he was about
done; but I grabbed my swag and we pushed on, for I told Bill that I’d seen
Stiffner making for the stables when I’d last looked round; and Bill thought
that we’d better get lost in the bush as soon as ever we could, and stay lost,
too, for Stiffner was a man that couldn’t stand being had.
The first thing that
Bill said when we got safe into camp was: “I told you that we’d pull through
all right. You need never be frightened when you’re travelling with me. Just
take my advice and leave things to me, and we’ll hang out all right. Now-.”
But I shut him up. He
made me mad.
“Why, you—! What the
sheol did you do?”
“Do?” he says. “I got
away with the swags, didn’t I? Where’d they be now if it wasn’t for me?”
Then I sat on him pretty
hard for his pretensions, and paid him out for all the patronage he’d worked
off on me, and called him a mug straight, and walked round him, so to speak,
and blowed, and told him never to pretend to me again that he was a battler.
Then, when I thought I’d
licked him into form, I cooled down and soaped him up a bit; but I never
thought that he had three climaxes and a crisis in store for me.
He took it all pretty
cool; he let me have my fling, and gave me time to get breath; then he leaned
languidly over on his right side, shoved his left hand down into his left
trouserpocket, and brought up a boot-lace, a box of matches, and nine-and-six.
As soon as I got the
focus of it I gasped:
“Where the deuce did you
get that?”
“I had it all along,” he
said, “but I seen at the pub that you had the show to chew a lug, so I thought
we’d save it—nine-and-sixpences ain’t picked up every day.”
Then he leaned over on
his left, went down into the other pocket, and came up with a piece of tobacco
and half-a-sovereign.
My eyes bulged out.
“Where the blazes did
you get that from?” I yelled.
“That,” he said, “was
the half-quid you give me last night. Half-quids ain’t to be thrown away these
times; and, besides, I had a down on Stiffner, and meant to pay him out; I
reckoned that if we wasn’t sharp enough to take him down we hadn’t any business
to be supposed to be alive. Anyway, I guessed we’d do it; and so we did—and got
a bottle of whisky into the bargain.”
Then he leaned back,
tired-like, against the log, and dredged his upper left-hand waistcoat-pocket,
and brought up a sovereign wrapped in a pound note. Then he waited for me to
speak; but I couldn’t. I got my mouth open, but couldn’t get it shut again.
“I got that out of the
mugs last night, but I thought that we’d want it, and might as well keep it.
Quids ain’t so easily picked up, nowadays; and, besides, we need stuff more’n
Stiffner does, and so—”
“And did he know you had
the stuff?” I gasped.
“Oh, yes, that’s the fun
of it. That’s what made him so excited. He was in the parlour all the time I
was playing. But we might as well have a drink!
“We did. I wanted it.”
Bill turned in
by-and-by, and looked like a sleeping innocent in the moonlight. I sat up late,
and smoked, and thought hard, and watched Bill, and turned in, and thought till
near daylight, and then went to sleep, and had a nightmare about it. I dreamed
I chased Stiffner forty miles to buy his pub, and that Bill turned out to be
his nephew.
Bill divvied up all
right, and gave me half a crown over, but I didn’t travel with him long after
that. He was a decent young fellow as far as chaps go, and a good mate as far
as mates go; but he was too far ahead for a peaceful, easy-going chap like me.
It would have worn me out in a year to keep up to him.
P.S.—The name of this
should have been: ‘Bill and Stiffner (thirdly, Jim)’
Jack Drew sat on the
edge of the shaft, with his foot in the loop and one hand on the rope, ready to
descend. His elder brother, Tom, stood at one end of the windlass and the third
mate at the other. Jack paused before swinging off, looked up at his brother,
and impulsively held out his hand:
“You ain’t going to let
the sun go down, are you, Tom?”
But Tom kept both hands
on the windlass-handle and said nothing.
“Lower away!”
They lowered him to the
bottom, and Tom shouldered his pick in silence and walked off to the tent. He
found the tin plate, pint-pot, and things set ready for him on the rough slab
table under the bush shed. The tea was made, the cabbage and potatoes strained
and placed in a billy near the fire. He found the fried bacon and steak between
two plates in the camp-oven. He sat down to the table but he could not eat. He
felt mean. The inexperience and hasty temper of his brother had caused the
quarrel between them that morning; but then Jack admitted that, and apologized
when he first tried to make it up.
Tom moved round uneasily
and tried to smoke: he could not get Jack’s last appeal out of his ears—“You
ain’t going to let the sun go down, Tom?”
Tom found himself
glancing at the sun. It was less than two hours from sunset. He thought of the
words of the old Hebrew—or Chinese—poet; he wasn’t religious, and the
authorship didn’t matter. The old poet’s words began to haunt him “Let not the
sun go down upon your wrath—Let not the sun go down upon your wrath.”
The line contains good,
sound advice; for quick-tempered men are often the most sensitive, and when
they let the sun go down on the aforesaid wrath that quality is likely to get
them down and worry them during the night.
Tom started to go to the
claim, but checked himself, and sat down and tried to draw comfort from his
pipe. He understood his brother thoroughly, but his brother never understood
him—that was where the trouble was. Presently he got thinking how Jack would
worry about the quarrel and have no heart for his work. Perhaps he was fretting
over it now, all alone by himself, down at the end of the damp, dark drive. Tom
had a lot of the old woman about him, in spite of his unsociable ways and
brooding temper.
He had almost made up
his mind to go below again, on some excuse, when his mate shouted from the top
of the shaft:
“Tom! Tom! For Christ’s
sake come here!”
Tom’s heart gave a great
thump, and he ran like a kangaroo to the shaft. All the diggers within hearing
were soon on the spot. They saw at a glance what had happened. It was madness
to sink without timber in such treacherous ground. The sides of the
shaft were closing in. Tom sprang forward and shouted through the crevice:
“To the face, Jack! To
the face, for your life!”
“The old Workings!” he
cried, turning to the diggers. “Bring a fan and tools. We’ll dig him out.”
A few minutes later a
fan was rigged over a deserted shaft close by, where fortunately the windlass
had been left for bailing purposes, and men were down in the old drive. Tom
knew that he and his mates had driven very close to the old workings.
He knelt in the damp
clay before the face and worked like a madman; he refused to take turn about,
and only dropped the pick to seize a shovel in his strong hands, and snatch
back the loose clay from under his feet; he reckoned that he had six or,
perhaps, eight feet to drive, and he knew that the air could not last long in
the new drive—even if that had not already fallen in and crushed his brother.
Great drops of perspiration stood out on Tom’s forehead, and his breath began
to come in choking sobs, but he still struck strong, savage blows into the clay
before him, and the drive lengthened quickly. Once he paused a moment to
listen, and then distinctly heard a sound as of a tool or stone being struck
against the end of the new drive. Jack was safe!
Tom dug on until the
clay suddenly fell away from his pick and left a hole, about the size of a
plate, in the “face” before him. “Thank God!” said a hoarse, strained voice at
the other side.
“All right, Jack!”
“Yes, old man; you are
just in time; I’ve hardly got room to stand in, and I’m nearly smothered.” He
was crouching against the “face” of the new drive.
Tom dropped his pick and
fell back against the man behind him.
“Oh, God! my back!” he
cried.
Suddenly he struggled to
his knees, and then fell forward on his hand and dragged himself close to the
hole in the end of the drive.
“Jack!” he gasped,
“Jack!”
“Right, old man; what’s
the matter?”
“I’ve hurt my heart,
Jack!—Put your hand—quick!... The sun’s going down.”
Jack’s hand came out
through the hole, Tom gripped it, and then fell with his face in the damp clay.
They half carried, half
dragged him from the drive, for the roof was low and they were obliged to
stoop. They took him to the shaft and sent him up, lashed to the rope.
A few blows of the pick,
and Jack scrambled from his prison and went to the surface, and knelt on the
grass by the body of his brother. The diggers gathered round and took off their
hats. And the sun went down.
“Well, I dunno,” said
Tom Marshall—known as “The Oracle”—“I’ve heerd o’ sich cases before: they ain’t
commin, but—I’ve heerd o’ sich cases before,” and he screwed up the left side
of his face whilst he reflectively scraped his capacious right ear with the
large blade of a pocket-knife.
They were sitting at the
western end of the rouseabouts’ hut, enjoying the breeze that came up when the
sun went down, and smoking and yarning. The “case” in question was a wretchedly
forlorn-looking specimen of the swag-carrying clan whom a boundary-rider had
found wandering about the adjacent plain, and had brought into the station. He
was a small, scraggy man, painfully fair, with a big, baby-like head, vacant
watery eyes, long thin hairy hands, that felt like pieces of damp seaweed, and
an apologetic cringe-and-look-up-at-you manner. He professed to have forgotten
who he was and all about himself.
The Oracle was deeply
interested in this case, as indeed he was in anything else that “looked
curious.” He was a big, simple-minded shearer, with more heart than brains,
more experience than sense, and more curiosity than either. It was a wonder
that he had not profited, even indirectly, by the last characteristic. His
heart was filled with a kind of reverential pity for anyone who was fortunate or
unfortunate enough to possess an “affliction;” and amongst his mates had been
counted a deaf man, a blind man, a poet, and a man who “had rats.” Tom had
dropped across them individually, when they were down in the world, and had
befriended them, and studied them with great interest—especially the poet; and
they thought kindly of him, and were grateful—except the individual with the
rats, who reckoned Tom had an axe to grind—that he, in fact, wanted to cut his
(Rat’s) liver out as a bait for Darling cod—and so renounced the mateship.
It was natural, then,
for The Oracle to take the present case under his wing. He used his influence
with the boss to get the Mystery on “picking up,” and studied him in spare
time, and did his best to assist the poor hushed memory, which nothing the men
could say or do seemed able to push further back than the day on which the
stranger “kind o’ woke up” on the plain, and found a swag beside him. The swag
had been prospected and fossicked for a clue, but yielded none. The chaps were
sceptical at first, and inclined to make fun of the Mystery; but Tom
interfered, and intimated that if they were skunks enough to chyack or try on
any of their “funny business” with a “pore afflicted chap,” he (Tom) would be
obliged to “perform.” Most of the men there had witnessed Tom’s performance,
and no one seemed ambitious to take a leading part in it. They preferred to be
in the audience.
“Yes,” reflected The
Oracle, “it’s a curious case, and I dare say some of them big doctors, like
Morell Mackenzie, would be glad to give a thousand or two to get holt on a case
like this.”
“Done,” cried Mitchell,
the goat of the shed. “I’ll go halves!—or stay, let’s form a syndicate and work
the Mystery.”
Some of the rouseabouts
laughed, but the joke fell as flat with Tom as any other joke.
“The worst of it is,”
said the Mystery himself, in the whine that was natural to him, and with a
timid side look up at Tom—“the worst of it is I might be a lord or duke, and
don’t know anything about it. I might be a rich man, with a lot of houses and
money. I might be a lord.”
The chaps guffawed.
“Wot’yer laughing at?”
asked Mitchell. “I don’t see anything unreasonable about it; he might be a lord
as far as looks go. I’ve seen two.”
“Yes,” reflected Tom,
ignoring Mitchell, “there’s something in that; but then again, you see, you
might be Jack the Ripper. Better let it slide, mate; let the dead past bury its
dead. Start fresh with a clean sheet.”
“But I don’t even know
my name, or whether I’m married or not,” whined the outcast. “I might have a
good wife and little ones.”
“Better keep on
forgetting, mate,” Mitchell said, “and as for a name, that’s nothing. I don’t
know mine, and I’ve had eight. There’s plenty good names knocking round. I knew
a man named Jim Smith that died. Take his name, it just suits you, and he ain’t
likely to call round for it; if he does, you can say you was born with it.”
So they called him
Smith, and soon began to regard him as a harmless lunatic and to take no notice
of his eccentricities. Great interest was taken in the case for a time, and
even Mitchell put in his oar and tried all sorts of ways to assist the Mystery
in his weak, helpless, and almost pitiful endeavours to recollect who he was. A
similar case happened to appear in the papers at this time, and the thing
caught on to such an extent that The Oracle was moved to impart some advice
from his store of wisdom.
“I wouldn’t think too
much over it if I was you,” said he to Mitchell, “hundreds of sensible men went
mad over that there Tichborne case who didn’t have anything to do with it, but
just through thinking on it; and you’re ratty enough already, Jack. Let it
alone and trust me to find out who’s Smith just as soon as ever we cut out.”
Meanwhile Smith ate,
worked, and slept, and borrowed tobacco and forgot to return it—which was made
a note of. He talked freely about his case when asked, but if he addressed
anyone, it was with the air of the timid but good young man, who is fully aware
of the extent and power of this world’s wickedness, and stands somewhat in awe
of it, but yet would beg you to favour a humble worker in the vineyard by
kindly accepting a tract, and passing it on to friends after perusal.
One Saturday morning,
about a fortnight before cut out, The Oracle came late to his stand, and apparently
with something on his mind. Smith hadn’t turned up, and the next rouseabout was
doing his work, to the mutual dissatisfaction of all parties immediately
concerned.
“Did you see anything of
Smith?” asked Mitchell of The Oracle. “Seems to have forgot to get up this
morning.”
Tom looked disheartened
and disappointed. “He’s forgot again,” said he, slowly and
impressively.
“Forgot what? We know
he’s blessed well forgot to come to graft.”
“He’s forgot again,”
repeated Tom. “He woke up this morning and wanted to know who he was and where
he was.” Comments.
“Better give him best,
Oracle,” said Mitchell presently. “If he can’t find out who he is and where he
is, the boss’ll soon find it out for him.”
“No,” said Tom, “when I
take a thing in hand I see it through.”
This was also
characteristic of the boss-over-the-board, though in another direction. He went
down to the but and inquired for Smith.
“Why ain’t you at work?”
“Who am I, sir? Where am
I?” whined Smith. “Can you please tell me who I am and where I am?”
The boss drew a long
breath and stared blankly at the Mystery; then he erupted.
“Now, look here!” he
howled, “I don’t know who the gory sheol you are, except that you’re a gory
lunatic, and what’s more, I don’t care a damn. But I’ll soon show you where you
are! You can call up at the store and get your cheque, and soon as you blessed
well like; and then take a walk, and don’t forget to take your lovely swag with
you.”
The matter was discussed
at the dinner-table. The Oracle swore that it was a cruel, mean way to treat a
“pore afflicted chap,” and cursed the boss. Tom’s admirers cursed in sympathy,
and trouble seemed threatening, when the voice of Mitchell was heard to rise in
slow, deliberate tones over the clatter of cutlery and tin plates.
“I wonder,” said the
voice, “I wonder whether Smith forgot his cheque?”
It was ascertained that
Smith hadn’t.
There was some eating
and thinking done. Soon Mitchell’s voice was heard again, directed at The
Oracle.
It said “Do you keep any
vallabels about your bunk, Oracle?”
Tom looked hard at
Mitchell. “Why?”
“Oh, nothin’: only I
think it wouldn’t be a bad idea for you to look at your bunk and see whether
Smith forgot.”
The chaps grew awfully
interested. They fixed their eyes on Tom, and he looked with feeling from one
face to another; then he pushed his plate back, and slowly extracted his long
legs from between the stool and the table. He climbed to his bunk, and
carefully reviewed the ingredients of his swag. Smith hadn’t forgot.
When The Oracle’s face
came round again there was in it a strange expression which a close study would
have revealed to be more of anger than of sorrow, but that was not all. It was
an expression such as a man might wear who is undergoing a terrible operation,
without chloroform, but is determined not to let a whimper escape him. Tom
didn’t swear, and by that token they guessed how mad he was. ’Twas a rough
shed, with a free and lurid vocabulary, but had they all sworn in chorus, with
One-eyed Bogan as lead, it would not have done justice to Tom’s feelings—and
they realized this.
The Oracle took down his
bridle from its peg, and started for the door amid a respectful and sympathetic
silence, which was only partly broken once by the voice of Mitchell, which
asked in an awed whisper:
“Going ter ketch yer
horse, Tom?” The Oracle nodded, and passed on; he spake no word—he was too full
for words.
Five minutes passed, and
then the voice of Mitchell was heard again, uninterrupted by the clatter of
tinware. It said in impressive tones:
“It would not be a bad
idea for some of you chaps that camp in the bunks along there, to have a look
at your things. Scotty’s bunk is next to Tom’s.”
Scotty shot out of his
place as if a snake had hold of his leg, starting a plank in the table and
upsetting three soup plates. He reached for his bunk like a drowning man
clutching at a plank, and tore out the bedding. Again, Smith hadn’t forgot.
Then followed a general
overhaul, and it was found in most cases that Smith had remembered. The pent-up
reservoir of blasphemy burst forth.
The Oracle came up with
Smith that night at the nearest shanty, and found that he had forgotten again,
and in several instances, and was forgetting some more under the influence of
rum and of the flattering interest taken in his case by a drunken Bachelor of
Arts who happened to be at the pub. Tom came in quietly from the rear, and
crooked his finger at the shanty-keeper. They went apart from the rest, and
talked together a while very earnestly. Then they secretly examined Smith’s
swag, the core of which was composed of Tom’s and his mate’s valuables.
Then The Oracle stirred
up Smith’s recollections and departed.
Smith was about again in
a couple of weeks. He was damaged somewhat physically, but his memory was no
longer impaired.
One of the hungriest
cleared roads in New South Wales runs to within a couple of miles of
Hungerford, and stops there; then you strike through the scrub to the town.
There is no distant prospect of Hungerford—you don’t see the town till you are
quite close to it, and then two or three white-washed galvanized-iron roofs
start out of the mulga.
They say that a past
Ministry commenced to clear the road from Bourke, under the impression that
Hungerford was an important place, and went on, with the blindness peculiar to
governments, till they got to within two miles of the town. Then they ran short
of rum and rations, and sent a man on to get them, and make inquiries. The
member never came back, and two more were sent to find him—or Hungerford. Three
days later the two returned in an exhausted condition, and submitted a motion
of want-of-confidence, which was lost. Then the whole House went on and was
lost also. Strange to relate, that Government was never missed.
However, we found
Hungerford and camped there for a day. The town is right on the Queensland
border, and an interprovincial rabbit-proof fence—with rabbits on both sides of
it—runs across the main street.
This fence is a standing
joke with Australian rabbits—about the only joke they have out there, except
the memory of Pasteur and poison and inoculation. It is amusing to go a little
way out of town, about sunset, and watch them crack Noah’s Ark rabbit jokes
about that fence, and burrow under and play leap-frog over it till they get
tired. One old buck rabbit sat up and nearly laughed his ears off at a joke of
his own about that fence. He laughed so much that he couldn’t get away when I
reached for him. I could hardly eat him for laughing. I never saw a rabbit
laugh before; but I’ve seen a ’possum do it.
Hungerford consists of
two houses and a humpy in New South Wales, and five houses in Queensland.
Characteristically enough, both the pubs are in Queensland. We got a glass of
sour yeast at one and paid sixpence for it—we had asked for English ale.
The post office is in
New South Wales, and the police-barracks in Bananaland. The police cannot do
anything if there’s a row going on across the street in New South Wales, except
to send to Brisbane and have an extradition warrant applied for; and they don’t
do much if there’s a row in Queensland. Most of the rows are across the border,
where the pubs are.
At least, I believe
that’s how it is, though the man who told me might have been a liar. Another
man said he was a liar, but then he might have been a liar
himself—a third person said he was one. I heard that there was a fight over it,
but the man who told me about the fight might not have been telling the truth.
One part of the town
swears at Brisbane when things go wrong, and the other part curses Sydney.
The country looks as though
a great ash-heap had been spread out there, and mulga scrub and firewood
planted—and neglected. The country looks just as bad for a hundred miles round
Hungerford, and beyond that it gets worse—a blasted, barren wilderness that
doesn’t even howl. If it howled it would be a relief.
I believe that Bourke
and Wills found Hungerford, and it’s a pity they did; but, if I ever stand by
the graves of the men who first travelled through this country, when there were
neither roads nor stations, nor tanks, nor bores, nor pubs, I’ll—I’ll take my
hat off. There were brave men in the land in those days.
It is said that the
explorers gave the district its name chiefly because of the hunger they found
there, which has remained there ever since. I don’t know where the “ford” comes
in—there’s nothing to ford, except in flood-time. Hungerthirst would have been
better. The town is supposed to be situated on the banks of a river called the
Paroo, but we saw no water there, except what passed for it in a tank. The
goats and sheep and dogs and the rest of the population drink there. It is
dangerous to take too much of that water in a raw state.
Except in flood-time you
couldn’t find the bed of the river without the aid of a spirit-level and a long
straight-edge. There is a Custom-house against the fence on the northern side.
A pound of tea often costs six shillings on that side, and you can get a common
lead pencil for fourpence at the rival store across the street in the mother
province. Also, a small loaf of sour bread sells for a shilling at the humpy
aforementioned. Only about sixty per cent of the sugar will melt.
We saw one of the
storekeepers give a dead-beat swagman five shillings’ worth of rations to take
him on into Queensland. The storekeepers often do this, and put it down on the
loss side of their books. I hope the recording angel listens, and puts it down
on the right side of his book.
We camped on the
Queensland side of the fence, and after tea had a yarn with an old man who was
minding a mixed flock of goats and sheep; and we asked him whether he thought
Queensland was better than New South Wales, or the other way about.
He scratched the back of
his head, and thought a while, and hesitated like a stranger who is going to do
you a favour at some personal inconvenience.
At last, with the bored
air of a man who has gone through the same performance too often before, he
stepped deliberately up to the fence and spat over it into New South Wales.
After which he got leisurely through and spat back on Queensland.
“That’s what I think of
the blanky colonies!” he said.
He gave us time to
become sufficiently impressed; then he said:
“And if I was at the
Victorian and South Australian border I’d do the same thing.”
He let that soak into
our minds, and added: “And the same with West Australia—and—and Tasmania.” Then
he went away.
The last would have been
a long spit—and he forgot Maoriland.
We heard afterwards that
his name was Clancy and he had that day been offered a job droving at
“twenty-five shillings a week and find your own horse.” Also find your own
horse feed and tobacco and soap and other luxuries, at station prices.
Moreover, if you lost your own horse you would have to find another, and if
that died or went astray you would have to find a third—or forfeit your pay and
return on foot. The boss drover agreed to provide flour and mutton—when such
things were procurable.
Consequently, Clancy’s
unfavourable opinion of the colonies.
My mate and I sat down
on our swags against the fence to talk things over. One of us was very deaf.
Presently a black tracker went past and looked at us, and returned to the pub.
Then a trooper in Queensland uniform came along and asked us what the trouble
was about, and where we came from and were going, and where we camped. We said
we were discussing private business, and he explained that he thought it was a
row, and came over to see. Then he left us, and later on we saw him sitting
with the rest of the population on a bench under the hotel veranda. Next
morning we rolled up our swags and left Hungerford to the north-west.
“This girl,” said
Mitchell, continuing a yarn to his mate, “was about the ugliest girl I ever
saw, except one, and I’ll tell you about her directly. The old man had a
carpenter’s shop fixed up in a shed at the back of his house, and he used to
work there pretty often, and sometimes I’d come over and yarn with him. One day
I was sitting on the end of the bench, and the old man was working away, and
Mary was standing there too, all three of us yarning—she mostly came poking
round where I was if I happened to be on the premises—or at least I thought
so—and we got yarning about getting married, and the old cove said he’d get
married again if the old woman died.
“‘You get
married again!’ said Mary. ‘Why, father, you wouldn’t get anyone to marry
you—who’d have you?’
“‘Well,’ he said, ‘I bet
I’ll get someone sooner than you, anyway. You don’t seem to be able to get
anyone, and it’s pretty near time you thought of settlin’ down and gettin’
married. I wish someone would have you.’
“He hit her pretty hard
there, but it served her right. She got as good as she gave. She looked at me
and went all colours, and then she went back to her washtub.
“She was mighty quiet at
tea-time—she seemed hurt a lot, and I began to feel sorry I’d laughed at the
old man’s joke, for she was really a good, hard-working girl, and you couldn’t
help liking her.
“So after tea I went out
to her in the kitchen, where she was washing up, to try and cheer her up a bit.
She’d scarcely speak at first, except to say ‘Yes’ or ‘No’, and kept her face
turned away from me; and I could see that she’d been crying. I began to feel
sorry for her and mad at the old man, and I started to comfort her. But I
didn’t go the right way to work about it. I told her that she mustn’t take any
notice of the old cove, as he didn’t mean half he said. But she seemed to take
it harder than ever, and at last I got so sorry for her that I told her
that I’d have her if she’d have me.”
“And what did she say?”
asked Mitchell’s mate, after a pause.
“She said she wouldn’t
have me at any price!”
The mate laughed, and
Mitchell grinned his quiet grin.
“Well, this set me
thinking,” he continued. “I always knew I was a dashed ugly cove, and I began
to wonder whether any girl would really have me; and I kept on it till at last
I made up my mind to find out and settle the matter for good—or bad.
“There was another
farmer’s daughter living close by, and I met her pretty often coming home from
work, and sometimes I had a yarn with her. She was plain, and no mistake: Mary
was a Venus alongside of her. She had feet like a Lascar, and hands about ten
sizes too large for her, and a face like that camel—only red; she walked like a
camel, too. She looked like a ladder with a dress on, and she didn’t know a great
A from a corner cupboard.
“Well, one evening I met
her at the sliprails, and presently I asked her, for a joke, if she’d marry me.
Mind you, I never wanted to marry her; I was only curious to know
whether any girl would have me.
“She turned away her
face and seemed to hesitate, and I was just turning away and beginning to think
I was a dashed hopeless case, when all of a sudden she fell up against me and
said she’d be my wife.... And it wasn’t her fault that she wasn’t.”
“What did she do?”
“Do! What didn’t she do?
Next day she went down to our place when I was at work, and hugged and kissed
mother and the girls all round, and cried, and told mother that she’d try and
be a dutiful daughter to her. Good Lord! You should have seen the old woman and
the girls when I came home.
“Then she let everyone
know that Bridget Page was engaged to Jack Mitchell, and told her friends that
she went down on her knees every night and thanked the Lord for getting the
love of a good man. Didn’t the fellows chyack me, though! My sisters were
raving mad about it, for their chums kept asking them how they liked their new
sister, and when it was going to come off, and who’d be bridesmaids and best
man, and whether they weren’t surprised at their brother Jack’s choice; and
then I’d gammon at home that it was all true.
“At last the place got
too hot for me. I got sick of dodging that girl. I sent a mate of mine to tell
her that it was all a joke, and that I was already married in secret; but she
didn’t see it, then I cleared, and got a job in Newcastle, but had to leave
there when my mates sent me the office that she was coming. I wouldn’t wonder
but what she is humping her swag after me now. In fact, I thought you was her
in disguise when I set eyes on you first.... You needn’t get mad about it; I
don’t mean to say that you’re quite as ugly as she was, because I never saw a
man that was—or a woman either. Anyway, I’ll never ask a woman to marry me
again unless I’m ready to marry her.”
Then Mitchell’s mate
told a yarn.
“I knew a case once
something like the one you were telling me about; the landlady of a hash-house
where I was stopping in Albany told me. There was a young carpenter staying
there, who’d run away from Sydney from an old maid who wanted to marry him.
He’d cleared from the church door, I believe. He was scarcely more’n a
boy—about nineteen—and a soft kind of a fellow, something like you, only
good-looking—that is, he was passable. Well, as soon as the woman found out
where he’d gone, she came after him. She turned up at the boarding-house one
Saturday morning when Bobbie was at work; and the first thing she did was to
rent a double room from the landlady and buy some cups and saucers to start
housekeeping with. When Bobbie came home he just gave her one look and gave up
the game.
“‘Get your dinner,
Bobbie,’ she said, after she’d slobbered over him a bit, ‘and then get dressed
and come with me and get married!’
“She was about three
times his age, and had a face like that picture of a lady over Sappho Smith’s
letters in the Sydney Bulletin.
“Well, Bobbie went with
her like a—like a lamb; never gave a kick or tried to clear.”
“Hold on,” said
Mitchell, “did you ever shear lambs?”
“Never mind. Let me
finish the yarn. Bobbie was married; but she wouldn’t let him out of her sight
all that afternoon, and he had to put up with her before them all. About
bedtime he sneaked out and started along the passage to his room that he shared
with two or three mates. But she’d her eye on him.
“‘Bobbie, Bobbie!’ she
says, ‘Where are you going?’
“‘I’m going to bed,’
said Bobbie. ‘Good night!’
“‘Bobbie, Bobbie,’ she
says, sharply. ‘That isn’t our room; this is our room, Bobbie.
Come back at once! What do you mean, Bobbie? Do you hear me, Bobbie?’
“So Bobbie came back,
and went in with the scarecrow. Next morning she was first at the breakfast
table, in a dressing-gown and curl papers. And when they were all sitting down
Bobbie sneaked in, looking awfully sheepish, and sidled for his chair at the
other end of the table. But she’d her eyes on him.
“‘Bobbie, Bobbie!’ she
said, ‘Come and kiss me, Bobbie!’” And he had to do it in front of them all.
“But I believe she made
him a good wife.”
The Blenheim coach was
descending into the valley of the Avetere River—pronounced Aveterry—from the saddle
of Taylor’s Pass. Across the river to the right, the grey slopes and flats
stretched away to the distant sea from a range of tussock hills. There was no
native bush there; but there were several groves of imported timber standing
wide apart—-sentinel-like—seeming lonely and striking in their isolation.
“Grand country, New
Zealand, eh?” said a stout man with a brown face, grey beard, and grey eyes,
who sat between the driver and another passenger on the box.
“You don’t call this
grand country!” exclaimed the other passenger, who claimed to be, and looked
like, a commercial traveller, and might have been a professional spieler—quite
possibly both. “Why, it’s about the poorest country in New Zealand! You ought
to see some of the country in the North Island—Wairarapa and Napier districts,
round about Pahiatua. I call this damn poor country.”
“Well, I reckon you
wouldn’t, if you’d ever been in Australia—back in New South Wales. The people
here don’t seem to know what a grand country they’ve got. You say this is the
worst, eh? Well, this would make an Australian cockatoo’s mouth water-the worst
of New Zealand would.”
“I always thought
Australia was all good country,” mused the driver—a flax-stick. “I always
thought—”
“Good country!”
exclaimed the man with the grey beard, in a tone of disgust. “Why, it’s only a
mongrel desert, except some bits round the coast. The worst dried-up and
God-forsaken country I was ever in.”
There was a silence,
thoughtful on the driver’s part, and aggressive on that of the stranger.
“I always thought,” said
the driver, reflectively, after the pause—“I always thought Australia was a
good country,” and he placed his foot on the brake.
They let him think. The
coach descended the natural terraces above the river bank, and pulled up at the
pub.
“So you’re a native of
Australia?” said the bagman to the grey-beard, as the coach went on again.
“Well, I suppose I am.
Anyway, I was born there. That’s the main thing I’ve got against the darned
country.”
“How long did you stay
there?”
“Till I got away,” said
the stranger. Then, after a think, he added, “I went away first when I was
thirty-five—went to the islands. I swore I’d never go back to Australia again;
but I did. I thought I had a kind of affection for old Sydney. I knocked about
the blasted country for five or six years, and then I cleared out to ’Frisco. I
swore I’d never go back again, and I never will.”
“But surely you’ll take
a run over and have a look at old Sydney and those places, before you go back
to America, after getting so near?”
“What the blazes do I
want to have a look at the blamed country for?” snapped the stranger, who had
refreshed considerably. “I’ve got nothing to thank Australia for—except getting
out of it. It’s the best country to get out of that I was ever in.”
“Oh, well, I only
thought you might have had some friends over there,” interposed the traveller
in an injured tone.
“Friends! That’s another
reason. I wouldn’t go back there for all the friends and relations since Adam.
I had more than quite enough of it while I was there. The worst and hardest
years of my life were spent in Australia. I might have starved there, and did
do it half my time. I worked harder and got less in my own country in five
years than I ever did in any other in fifteen”—he was getting mixed—“and I’ve
been in a few since then. No, Australia is the worst country that ever the Lord
had the sense to forget. I mean to stick to the country that stuck to me, when
I was starved out of my own dear native land—and that country is the United
States of America. What’s Australia? A big, thirsty, hungry wilderness, with
one or two cities for the convenience of foreign speculators, and a few
collections of humpies, called towns—also for the convenience of foreign
speculators; and populated mostly by mongrel sheep, and partly by fools, who
live like European slaves in the towns, and like dingoes in the bush—who drivel
about ‘democracy,’ and yet haven’t any more spunk than to graft for a few
Cockney dudes that razzle-dazzle most of the time in Paris. Why, the Australians
haven’t even got the grit to claim enough of their own money to throw a few
dams across their watercourses, and so make some of the interior fit to live
in. America’s bad enough, but it was never so small as that.... Bah! The curse
of Australia is sheep, and the Australian war cry is Baa!”
“Well, you’re the first
man I ever heard talk as you’ve been doing about his own country,” said the
bagman, getting tired and impatient of being sat on all the time. “‘Lives there
a man with a soul so dead, who never said—to—to himself’... I forget the darned
thing.”
He tried to remember it.
The man whose soul was dead cleared his throat for action, and the driver—for
whom the bagman had shouted twice as against the stranger’s once—took the
opportunity to observe that he always thought a man ought to stick up for his
own country.
The stranger ignored him
and opened fire on the bagman. He proceeded to prove that that was all rot—that
patriotism was the greatest curse on earth; that it had been the cause of all
war; that it was the false, ignorant sentiment which moved men to slave,
starve, and fight for the comfort of their sluggish masters; that it was the
enemy of universal brotherhood, the mother of hatred, murder, and slavery, and
that the world would never be any better until the deadly poison, called the
sentiment of patriotism, had been “educated” out of the stomachs of the people.
“Patriotism!” he exclaimed scornfully. “My country! The darned fools; the
country never belonged to them, but to the speculators, the absentees,
land-boomers, swindlers, gangs of thieves—the men the patriotic fools starve
and fight for—their masters. Ba-a!”
The opposition
collapsed.
The coach had climbed
the terraces on the south side of the river, and was bowling along on a level
stretch of road across the elevated flat.
“What trees are those?”
asked the stranger, breaking the aggressive silence which followed his
unpatriotic argument, and pointing to a grove ahead by the roadside. “They look
as if they’ve been planted there. There ain’t been a forest here surely?”
“Oh, they’re some trees
the Government imported,” said the bagman, whose knowledge on the subject was
limited. “Our own bush won’t grow in this soil.”
“But it looks as if
anything else would—”
Here the stranger
sniffed once by accident, and then several times with interest.
It was a warm morning
after rain. He fixed his eyes on those trees.
They didn’t look like
Australian gums; they tapered to the tops, the branches were pretty regular,
and the boughs hung in shipshape fashion. There was not the Australian heat to
twist the branches and turn the leaves.
“Why!” exclaimed the
stranger, still staring and sniffing hard. “Why, dang me if they ain’t (sniff)
Australian gums!”
“Yes,” said the driver,
flicking his horses, “they are.”
“Blanky (sniff) blanky
old Australian gums!” exclaimed the ex-Australian, with strange enthusiasm.
“They’re not old,” said
the driver; “they’re only young trees. But they say they don’t grow like that
in Australia—’count of the difference in the climate. I always thought—”
But the other did not
appear to hear him; he kept staring hard at the trees they were passing. They
had been planted in rows and cross-rows, and were coming on grandly.
There was a rabbit
trapper’s camp amongst those trees; he had made a fire to boil his billy with
gum-leaves and twigs, and it was the scent of that fire which interested the
exile’s nose, and brought a wave of memories with it.
“Good day, mate!” he
shouted suddenly to the rabbit trapper, and to the astonishment of his fellow
passengers.
“Good day, mate!” The
answer came back like an echo—it seemed to him—from the past.
Presently he caught
sight of a few trees which had evidently been planted before the others—as an
experiment, perhaps—and, somehow, one of them had grown after its own erratic
native fashion—gnarled and twisted and ragged, and could not be mistaken for
anything else but an Australian gum.
“A thunderin’ old
blue-gum!” ejaculated the traveller, regarding the tree with great interest.
He screwed his neck to
get a last glimpse, and then sat silently smoking and gazing straight ahead, as
if the past lay before him—and it was before him.
“Ah, well!” he said, in
explanation of a long meditative silence on his part; “ah, well—them
saplings—the smell of them gum-leaves set me thinking.” And he thought some
more.
“Well, for my part,”
said a tourist in the coach, presently, in a condescending tone, “I can’t see
much in Australia. The bally colonies are—”
“Oh, that be damned!”
snarled the Australian-born—they had finished the second flask of whisky. “What
do you Britishers know about Australia? She’s as good as England, anyway.”
“Well, I suppose you’ll
go straight back to the States as soon as you’ve done your business in
Christchurch,” said the bagman, when near their journey’s end they had become
confidential.
“Well, I dunno. I reckon
I’ll just take a run over to Australia first. There’s an old mate of mine in
business in Sydney, and I’d like to have a yarn with him.”
The scene is a small New
South Wales western selection, the holder whereof is native-English. His wife
is native-Irish. Time, Sunday, about 8 a.m. A used-up looking woman comes from
the slab-and-bark house, turns her face towards the hillside, and shrieks:
“T-o-o-mmay!”
No response, and presently
she draws a long breath and screams again:
“Tomm-a-a-y!”
A faint echo comes from
far up the siding where Tommy’s presence is vaguely indicated by half a dozen
cows moving slowly—very slowly—down towards the cow-yard.
The woman retires. Ten
minutes later she comes out again and screams:
“Tommy!
“Y-e-e-a-a-s-s!” very
passionately and shrilly.
“Ain’t you goin’ to
bring those cows down to-day?”
“Y-e-e-a-a-s-s-s!—carn’t
yer see I’m comin’?”
A boy is seen to run
wildly along the siding and hurl a missile at a feeding cow; the cow runs
forward a short distance through the trees, and then stops to graze again while
the boy stirs up another milker.
An hour goes by.
The rising Australian
generation is represented by a thin, lanky youth of about fifteen. He is milking.
The cow-yard is next the house, and is mostly ankle-deep in slush. The boy
drives a dusty, discouraged-looking cow into the bail, and pins her head there;
then he gets tackle on to her right hind leg, hauls it back, and makes it fast
to the fence. There are eleven cows, but not one of them can be milked out of
the bail—chiefly because their teats are sore. The selector does not know what
makes the teats sore, but he has an unquestioning faith in a certain ointment,
recommended to him by a man who knows less about cows than he does himself,
which he causes to be applied at irregular intervals—leaving the mode of
application to the discretion of his son. Meanwhile the teats remain sore.
Having made the cow
fast, the youngster cautiously takes hold of the least sore teat, yanks it
suddenly, and dodges the cow’s hock. When he gets enough milk to dip his dirty
hands in, he moistens the teats, and things go on more smoothly. Now and then
he relieves the monotony of his occupation by squirting at the eye of a calf
which is dozing in the adjacent pen. Other times he milks into his mouth. Every
time the cow kicks, a burr or a grass-seed or a bit of something else falls
into the milk, and the boy drowns these things with a well-directed stream—on
the principle that what’s out of sight is out of mind.
Sometimes the boy sticks
his head into the cow’s side, hangs on by a teat, and dozes, while the bucket,
mechanically gripped between his knees, sinks lower and lower till it rests on
the ground. Likely as not he’ll doze on until his mother’s shrill voice
startles him with an inquiry as to whether he intends to get that milking done
to-day; other times he is roused by the plunging of the cow, or knocked over by
a calf which has broken through a defective panel in the pen. In the latter
case the youth gets tackle on to the calf, detaches its head from the teat with
the heel of his boot, and makes it fast somewhere. Sometimes the cow breaks or
loosens the leg-rope and gets her leg into the bucket and then the youth clings
desperately to the pail and hopes she’ll get her hoof out again without
spilling the milk. Sometimes she does, more often she doesn’t—it depends on the
strength of the boy and the pail and on the strategy of the former. Anyway, the
boy will lam the cow down with a jagged yard shovel, let her out, and bail up
another.
When he considers that
he has finished milking he lets the cows out with their calves and carries the
milk down to the dairy, where he has a heated argument with his mother,
who—judging from the quantity of milk—has reason to believe that he has slummed
some of the milkers. This he indignantly denies, telling her she knows very
well the cows are going dry.
The dairy is built of
rotten box bark—though there is plenty of good stringy-bark within easy
distance—and the structure looks as if it wants to lie down and is only
prevented by three crooked props on the leaning side; more props will soon be
needed in the rear for the dairy shows signs of going in that direction. The
milk is set in dishes made of kerosene-tins, cut in halves, which are placed on
bark shelves fitted round against the walls. The shelves are not level and the
dishes are brought to a comparatively horizontal position by means of chips and
bits of bark, inserted under the lower side. The milk is covered by soiled
sheets of old newspapers supported on sticks laid across the dishes. This
protection is necessary, because the box bark in the roof has crumbled away and
left fringed holes—also because the fowls roost up there. Sometimes the paper
sags, and the cream may have to be scraped off an article on dairy farming.
The selector’s wife
removes the newspapers, and reveals a thick, yellow layer of rich cream,
plentifully peppered with dust that has drifted in somehow. She runs a forefinger
round the edges of the cream to detach it from the tin, wipes her finger in her
mouth, and skims. If the milk and cream are very thick she rolls the cream over
like a pancake with her fingers, and lifts it out in sections. The thick milk
is poured into a slop-bucket, for the pigs and calves, the dishes are
“cleaned”—by the aid of a dipper full of warm water and a rag—and the wife
proceeds to set the morning’s milk. Tom holds up the doubtful-looking rag that
serves as a strainer while his mother pours in the milk. Sometimes the boy’s
hands get tired and he lets some of the milk run over, and gets into trouble;
but it doesn’t matter much, for the straining-cloth has several sizable holes
in the middle.
The door of the dairy
faces the dusty road and is off its hinges and has to be propped up. The prop
is missing this morning, and Tommy is accused of having been seen chasing old
Poley with it at an earlier hour. He never seed the damn prop, never chased no
cow with it, and wants to know what’s the use of always accusing him. He
further complains that he’s always blamed for everything. The pole is not
forthcoming, and so an old dray is backed against the door to keep it in
position. There is more trouble about a cow that is lost, and hasn’t been
milked for two days. The boy takes the cows up to the paddock sliprails and
lets the top rail down: the lower rail fits rather tightly and some exertion is
required to free it, so he makes the animals jump that one. Then he
“poddies“--hand-feeds—the calves which have been weaned too early. He carries
the skim-milk to the yard in a bucket made out of an oil-drum—sometimes a
kerosene-tin—seizes a calf by the nape of the neck with his left hand, inserts
the dirty forefinger of his right into its mouth, and shoves its head down into
the milk. The calf sucks, thinking it has a teat, and pretty soon it butts
violently—as calves do to remind their mothers to let down the milk—and the
boy’s wrist gets barked against the jagged edge of the bucket. He welts that
calf in the jaw, kicks it in the stomach, tries to smother it with its nose in
the milk, and finally dismisses it with the assistance of the calf rope and a
shovel, and gets another. His hand feels sticky and the cleaned finger makes it
look as if he wore a filthy, greasy glove with the forefinger torn off.
The selector himself is
standing against a fence talking to a neighbour. His arms rest on the top rail
of the fence, his chin rests on his hands, his pipe rests between his fingers,
and his eyes rest on a white cow that is chewing her cud on the opposite side
of the fence. The neighbour’s arms rest on the top rail also, his chin rests on
his hands, his pipe rests between his fingers, and his eyes rest on the cow.
They are talking about that cow. They have been talking about her for three
hours. She is chewing her cud. Her nose is well up and forward, and her eyes
are shut. She lets her lower jaw fall a little, moves it to one side, lifts it
again, and brings it back into position with a springing kind of jerk that has
almost a visible recoil. Then her jaws stay perfectly still for a moment, and
you would think she had stopped chewing. But she hasn’t. Now and again a soft,
easy, smooth-going swallow passes visibly along her clean, white throat and
disappears. She chews again, and by and by she loses consciousness and forgets
to chew. She never opens her eyes. She is young and in good condition; she has
had enough to eat, the sun is just properly warm for her, and—well, if an
animal can be really happy, she ought to be.
Presently the two men
drag themselves away from the fence, fill their pipes, and go to have a look at
some rows of forked sticks, apparently stuck in the ground for some purpose.
The selector calls these sticks fruit-trees, and he calls the place “the
orchard.” They fool round these wretched sticks until dinnertime, when the
neighbour says he must be getting home. “Stay and have some dinner! Man alive!
Stay and have some dinner!” says the selector; and so the friend stays.
It is a broiling hot day
in summer, and the dinner consists of hot roast meat, hot baked potatoes, hot
cabbage, hot pumpkin, hot peas, and burning-hot plum-pudding. The family drinks
on an average four cups of tea each per meal. The wife takes her place at the
head of the table with a broom to keep the fowls out, and at short intervals
she interrupts the conversation with such exclamations as “Shoo! shoo!” “Tommy,
can’t you see that fowl? Drive it out!” The fowls evidently pass a lot of their
time in the house. They mark the circle described by the broom, and take care
to keep two or three inches beyond it. Every now and then you see a fowl on the
dresser amongst the crockery, and there is great concern to get it out before
it breaks something. While dinner is in progress two steers get into the wheat
through a broken rail which has been spliced with stringy-bark, and a calf or
two break into the vineyard. And yet this careless Australian selector, who is
too shiftless to put up a decent fence, or build a decent house and who knows
little or nothing about farming, would seem by his conversation to have read up
all the great social and political questions of the day. Here are some
fragments of conversation caught at the dinner-table. Present—the selector, the
missus, the neighbour, Corney George—nicknamed “Henry George”—Tommy, Jacky, and
the younger children. The spaces represent interruptions by the fowls and
children:
Corney George
(continuing conversation): “But Henry George says, in ‘Progress and Poverty,’
he says—”
Missus (to the fowls):
“Shoo! Shoo!”
Corney: “He says—”
Tom: “Marther, jist
speak to this Jack.”
Missus (to Jack): “If
you can’t behave yourself, leave the table.”
Tom [Corney, probably]:
“He says in Progress and—”
Missus: “Shoo!”
Neighbour: “I think
‘Lookin’ Backwards’ is more—”
Missus: “Shoo! Shoo!
Tom, can’t you see that fowl?”
Selector: “Now I think
‘Caesar’s Column’ is more likely—Just look at—”
Missus: “Shoo! Shoo!”
Selector: “Just look at
the French Revolution.”
Corney: “Now, Henry
George-”
Tom: “Marther! I seen a
old-man kangaroo up on—”
Missus: “Shut up! Eat
your dinner an’ hold your tongue. Carn’t you see someone’s speakin’?”
Selector: “Just look at
the French—”
Missus (to the fowls):
“Shoo! Shoo!” (turning suddenly and unexpectedly on Jacky): “Take your fingers
out of the sugar!—Blast yer! that I should say such a thing.”
Neighbour: “But ‘Lookin’
Backwards”’
Missus: “There you go,
Tom! Didn’t I say you’d spill that tea? Go away from the table!”
Selector: “I think
‘Caesar’s Column’ is the only natural—”
Missus: “Shoo! Shoo!”
She loses patience, gets up and fetches a young rooster with the flat of the
broom, sending him flying into the yard; he falls with his head towards the
door and starts in again. Later on the conversation is about Deeming.
Selector: “There’s no
doubt the man’s mad—”
Missus: “Deeming! That
Windsor wretch! Why, if I was in the law I’d have him boiled alive! Don’t tell
me he didn’t know what he was doing! Why, I’d have him—”
Corney: “But, missus,
you—”
Missus (to the fowls):
“Shoo! Shoo!”
Macquarie the shearer
had met with an accident. To tell the truth, he had been in a drunken row at a
wayside shanty, from which he had escaped with three fractured ribs, a cracked
head, and various minor abrasions. His dog, Tally, had been a sober but savage participator
in the drunken row, and had escaped with a broken leg. Macquarie afterwards
shouldered his swag and staggered and struggled along the track ten miles to
the Union Town hospital. Lord knows how he did it. He didn’t exactly know
himself. Tally limped behind all the way, on three legs.
The doctors examined the
man’s injuries and were surprised at his endurance. Even doctors are surprised
sometimes—though they don’t always show it. Of course they would take him in,
but they objected to Tally. Dogs were not allowed on the premises.
“You will have to turn
that dog out,” they said to the shearer, as he sat on the edge of a bed.
Macquarie said nothing.
“We cannot allow dogs
about the place, my man,” said the doctor in a louder tone, thinking the man
was deaf.
“Tie him up in the yard
then.”
“No. He must go out.
Dogs are not permitted on the grounds.”
Macquarie rose slowly to
his feet, shut his agony behind his set teeth, painfully buttoned his shirt
over his hairy chest, took up his waistcoat, and staggered to the corner where
the swag lay.
“What are you going to
do?” they asked.
“You ain’t going to let
my dog stop?”
“No. It’s against the
rules. There are no dogs allowed on premises.”
He stooped and lifted
his swag, but the pain was too great, and he leaned back against the wall.
“Come, come now! man
alive!” exclaimed the doctor, impatiently. “You must be mad. You know you are
not in a fit state to go out. Let the wardsman help you to undress.”
“No!” said Macquarie.
“No. If you won’t take my dog in you don’t take me. He’s got a broken leg and
wants fixing up just—just as much as—as I do. If I’m good enough to come in,
he’s good enough—and—and better.”
He paused awhile,
breathing painfully, and then went on.
“That—that there old dog
of mine has follered me faithful and true, these twelve long hard and hungry
years. He’s about—about the only thing that ever cared whether I lived or fell
and rotted on the cursed track.”
He rested again; then he
continued: “That—that there dog was pupped on the track,” he said, with a sad
sort of a smile. “I carried him for months in a billy, and afterwards on my
swag when he knocked up.... And the old slut—his mother—she’d foller along
quite contented—and sniff the billy now and again—just to see if he was all
right.... She follered me for God knows how many years. She follered me till
she was blind—and for a year after. She follered me till she could crawl along
through the dust no longer, and—and then I killed her, because I couldn’t leave
her behind alive!”
He rested again.
“And this here old dog,”
he continued, touching Tally’s upturned nose with his knotted fingers, “this
here old dog has follered me for—for ten years; through floods and droughts,
through fair times and—and hard—mostly hard; and kept me from going mad when I
had no mate nor money on the lonely track; and watched over me for weeks when I
was drunk—drugged and poisoned at the cursed shanties; and saved my life more’n
once, and got kicks and curses very often for thanks; and forgave me for it
all; and—and fought for me. He was the only living thing that stood up for me
against that crawling push of curs when they set onter me at the shanty back
yonder—and he left his mark on some of ’em too; and—and so did I.”
He took another spell.
Then he drew in his
breath, shut his teeth hard, shouldered his swag, stepped into the doorway, and
faced round again.
The dog limped out of
the corner and looked up anxiously.
“That there dog,” said
Macquarie to the hospital staff in general, “is a better dog than I’m a man—or
you too, it seems—and a better Christian. He’s been a better mate to me than I
ever was to any man—or any man to me. He’s watched over me; kep’ me from
getting robbed many a time; fought for me; saved my life and took drunken kicks
and curses for thanks—and forgave me. He’s been a true, straight, honest, and
faithful mate to me—and I ain’t going to desert him now. I ain’t going to kick
him out in the road with a broken leg. I—Oh, my God! my back!”
He groaned and lurched
forward, but they caught him, slipped off the swag, and laid him on a bed.
Half an hour later the
shearer was comfortably fixed up.
“Where’s my dog!” he
asked, when he came to himself.
“Oh, the dog’s all
right,” said the nurse, rather impatiently. “Don’t bother. The doctor’s setting
his leg out in the yard.”
I met him in the
Full-and-Plenty Dining Rooms. It was a cheap place in the city, with good beds
upstairs let at one shilling per night—“Board and residence for respectable
single men, fifteen shillings per week.” I was a respectable single man then. I
boarded and resided there. I boarded at a greasy little table in the greasy
little corner under the fluffy little staircase in the hot and greasy little
dining-room or restaurant downstairs. They called it dining-rooms, but it was
only one room, and them wasn’t half enough room in it to work your elbows when
the seven little tables and forty-nine chairs were occupied. There was not room
for an ordinary-sized steward to pass up and down between the tables; but our
waiter was not an ordinary-sized man—he was a living skeleton in miniature. We
handed the soup, and the “roast beef one,” and “roast lamb one,” “corn beef and
cabbage one,” “veal and stuffing one,” and the “veal and pickled pork,” one—or
two, or three, as the case might be—and the tea and coffee, and the various
kinds of puddings—we handed them over each other, and dodged the drops as well
as we could. The very hot and very greasy little kitchen was adjacent, and it
contained the bathroom and other conveniences, behind screens of whitewashed
boards.
I resided upstairs in a
room where there were five beds and one wash-stand; one candle-stick, with a
very short bit of soft yellow candle in it; the back of a hair-brush, with
about a dozen bristles in it; and half a comb—the big-tooth end—with nine and a
half teeth at irregular distances apart.
He was a typical
bushman, not one of those tall, straight, wiry, brown men of the West, but from
the old Selection Districts, where many drovers came from, and of the old bush
school; one of those slight active little fellows whom we used to see in
cabbage-tree hats, Crimean shirts, strapped trousers, and elastic-side
boots—“larstins,” they called them. They could dance well; sing indifferently,
and mostly through their noses, the old bush songs; play the concertina
horribly; and ride like—like—well, they could ride.
He seemed as if he had
forgotten to grow old and die out with this old colonial school to which he
belonged. They had careless and forgetful ways about them. His
name was Jack Gunther, he said, and he’d come to Sydney to try to get something
done to his eyes. He had a portmanteau, a carpet bag, some things in a
three-bushel bag, and a tin bog. I sat beside him on his bed, and struck up an
acquaintance, and he told me all about it. First he asked me would I mind
shifting round to the other side, as he was rather deaf in that ear. He’d been
kicked by a horse, he said, and had been a little dull o’ hearing on that side
ever since.
He was as good as blind.
“I can see the people near me,” he said, “but I can’t make out their faces. I
can just make out the pavement and the houses close at hand, and all the rest
is a sort of white blur.” He looked up: “That ceiling is a kind of white, ain’t
it? And this,” tapping the wall and putting his nose close to it, “is a sort of
green, ain’t it?” The ceiling might have been whiter. The prevalent tints of
the wall-paper had originally been blue and red, but it was mostly green enough
now—a damp, rotten green; but I was ready to swear that the ceiling was snow and
that the walls were as green as grass if it would have made him feel more
comfortable. His sight began to get bad about six years before, he said; he
didn’t take much notice of it at first, and then he saw a quack, who made his
eyes worse. He had already the manner of the blind—the touch of every finger,
and even the gentleness in his speech. He had a boy down with him—a “sorter
cousin of his,” and the boy saw him round. “I’ll have to be sending that
youngster back,” he said, “I think I’ll send him home next week. He’ll be
picking up and learning too much down here.”
I happened to know the
district he came from, and we would sit by the hour and talk about the country,
and chaps by the name of this and chaps by the name of that—drovers mostly,
whom we had met or had heard of. He asked me if I’d ever heard of a chap by the
name of Joe Scott—a big sandy-complexioned chap, who might be droving; he was
his brother, or, at least, his half-brother, but he hadn’t heard of him for
years; he’d last heard of him at Blackall, in Queensland; he might have gone
overland to Western Australia with Tyson’s cattle to the new country.
We talked about grubbing
and fencing and digging and droving and shearing—all about the bush—and it all
came back to me as we talked. “I can see it all now,” he said once, in an
abstracted tone, seeming to fix his helpless eyes on the wall opposite. But he
didn’t see the dirty blind wall, nor the dingy window, nor the skimpy little
bed, nor the greasy wash-stand; he saw the dark blue ridges in the sunlight,
the grassy sidings and flats, the creek with clumps of she-oak here and there,
the course of the willow-fringed river below, the distant peaks and ranges
fading away into a lighter azure, the granite ridge in the middle distance, and
the rocky rises, the stringy-bark and the apple-tree flats, the scrubs, and the
sunlit plains—and all. I could see it, too—plainer than ever I did.
He had done a bit of
fencing in his time, and we got talking about timber. He didn’t believe in
having fencing-posts with big butts; he reckoned it was a mistake. “You see,”
he said, “the top of the butt catches the rain water and makes the post rot
quicker. I’d back posts without any butt at all to last as long or longer than
posts with ’em—that’s if the fence is well put up and well rammed.” He had
supplied fencing stuff, and fenced by contract, and—well, you can get more
posts without butts out of a tree than posts with them. He also objected to
charring the butts. He said it only made more work—and wasted time—the butts lasted
longer without being charred.
I asked him if he’d ever
got stringy-bark palings or shingles out of mountain ash, and he smiled a smile
that did my heart good to see, and said he had. He had also got them out of
various other kinds of trees.
We talked about soil and
grass, and gold-digging, and many other things which came back to one like a
revelation as we yarned.
He had been to the
hospital several times. “The doctors don’t say they can cure me,” he said,
“they say they might, be able to improve my sight and hearing, but it would
take a long time—anyway, the treatment would improve my general health. They
know what’s the matter with my eyes,” and he explained it as well as he could.
“I wish I’d seen a good doctor when my eyes first began to get weak; but young
chaps are always careless over things. It’s harder to get cured of anything
when you’re done growing.”
He was always hopeful
and cheerful. “If the worst comes to the worst,” he said, “there’s things I can
do where I come from. I might do a bit o’ wool-sorting, for instance. I’m a
pretty fair expert. Or else when they’re weeding out I could help. I’d just
have to sit down and they’d bring the sheep to me, and I’d feel the wool and
tell them what it was—being blind improves the feeling, you know.”
He had a packet of
portraits, but he couldn’t make them out very well now. They were sort of
blurred to him, but I described them and he told me who they were. “That’s a
girl o’ mine,” he said, with reference to one—a jolly, good-looking bush girl.
“I got a letter from her yesterday. I managed to scribble something, but I’ll
get you, if you don’t mind, to write something more I want to put in on another
piece of paper, and address an envelope for me.”
Darkness fell quickly
upon him now—or, rather, the “sort of white blur” increased and closed in. But
his hearing was better, he said, and he was glad of that and still cheerful. I
thought it natural that his hearing should improve as he went blind.
One day he said that he
did not think he would bother going to the hospital any more. He reckoned he’d
get back to where he was known. He’d stayed down too long already, and the
“stuff” wouldn’t stand it. He was expecting a letter that didn’t come. I was
away for a couple of days, and when I came back he had been shifted out of the
room and had a bed in an angle of the landing on top of the staircase, with the
people brushing against him and stumbling over his things all day on their way
up and down. I felt indignant, thinking that—the house being full—the boss had taken
advantage of the bushman’s helplessness and good nature to put him there. But
he said that he was quite comfortable. “I can get a whiff of air here,” he
said.
Going in next day I
thought for a moment that I had dropped suddenly back into the past and into a
bush dance, for there was a concertina going upstairs. He was sitting on the
bed, with his legs crossed, and a new cheap concertina on his knee, and his
eyes turned to the patch of ceiling as if it were a piece of music and he could
read it. “I’m trying to knock a few tunes into my head,” he said, with a brave
smile, “in case the worst comes to the worst.” He tried to be cheerful, but
seemed worried and anxious. The letter hadn’t come. I thought of the many blind
musicians in Sydney, and I thought of the bushman’s chance, standing at a
corner swanking a cheap concertina, and I felt sorry for him.
I went out with a vague
idea of seeing someone about the matter, and getting something done for the
bushman—of bringing a little influence to his assistance; but I suddenly
remembered that my clothes were worn out, my hat in a shocking state, my boots
burst, and that I owed for a week’s board and lodging, and was likely to be
thrown out at any moment myself; and so I was not in a position to go where
there was influence.
When I went back to the
restaurant there was a long, gaunt sandy-complexioned bushman sitting by Jack’s
side. Jack introduced him as his brother, who had returned unexpectedly to his
native district, and had followed him to Sydney. The brother was rather short
with me at first, and seemed to regard the restaurant people—all of us, in
fact—in the light of spielers who wouldn’t hesitate to take advantage of Jack’s
blindness if he left him a moment; and he looked ready to knock down the first
man who stumbled against Jack, or over his luggage—but that soon wore off. Jack
was going to stay with Joe at the Coffee Palace for a few weeks, and then go
back up-country, he told me. He was excited and happy. His brother’s manner
towards him was as if Jack had just lost his wife, or boy or someone very dear
to him. He would not allow him to do anything for himself, nor try to—not even
lace up his boot. He seemed to think that he was thoroughly helpless, and when
I saw him pack up Jack’s things, and help him at the table and fix his tie and
collar with his great brown hands, which trembled all the time with grief and
gentleness, and make Jack sit down on the bed whilst he got a cab and carried
the trap down to it, and take him downstairs as if he were made of thin glass,
and settle with the landlord—then I knew that Jack was all right.
We had a drink
together—Joe, Jack, the cabman, and I. Joe was very careful to hand Jack the
glass, and Jack made joke about it for Joe’s benefit. He swore he could see a
glass yet, and Joe laughed, but looked extra troubled the next moment.
I felt their grips on my
hand for five minutes after we parted.
In one of these years a
paragraph appeared in a daily paper to the effect that a constable had discovered
a little boy asleep on the steps of Grinder Bros’ factory at four o’clock one
rainy morning. He awakened him, and demanded an explanation.
The little fellow
explained that he worked there, and was frightened of being late; he started
work at six, and was apparently greatly astonished to hear that it was only
four. The constable examined a small parcel which the frightened child had in
his hand. It contained a clean apron and three slices of bread and treacle.
The child further
explained that he woke up and thought it was late, and didn’t like to wake
mother and ask her the time “because she’d been washin’.” He didn’t look at the
clock, because they “didn’t have one.” He volunteered no explanations as to how
he expected mother to know the time, but, perhaps, like many other mites of his
kind, he had unbounded faith in the infinitude of a mother’s wisdom. His name
was Arvie Aspinall, please sir, and he lived in Jones’s Alley. Father was dead.
A few days later the
same paper took great pleasure in stating, in reference to that “Touching
Incident” noticed in a recent issue, that a benevolent society lady had started
a subscription among her friends with the object of purchasing an alarm-clock
for the little boy found asleep at Grinder Bros’ workshop door.
Later on, it was
mentioned, in connection with the touching incident, that the alarm-clock had
been bought and delivered to the boy’s mother, who appeared to be quite
overcome with gratitude. It was learned, also, from another source, that the
last assertion was greatly exaggerated.
The touching incident
was worn out in another paragraph, which left no doubt that the benevolent
society lady was none other than a charming and accomplished daughter of the
House of Grinder.
It was late in the last
day of the Easter Holidays, during which Arvie Aspinall had lain in bed with a
bad cold. He was still what he called “croopy.” It was about nine o’clock, and
the business of Jones’s Alley was in full swing.
“That’s better, mother,
I’m far better,” said Arvie, “the sugar and vinegar cuts the phlegm, and the
both’rin’ cough gits out. It got out to such an extent for the next few minutes
that he could not speak. When he recovered his breath, he said:
“Better or worse, I’ll
have to go to work to-morrow. Gimme the clock, mother.”
“I tell you you shall
not go! It will be your death.”
“It’s no use talking,
mother; we can’t starve—and—s’posin’ somebody got my place! Gimme the clock,
mother.”
“I’ll send one of the
children round to say you’re ill. They’ll surely let you off for a day or two.”
“Tain’t no use; they
won’t wait; I know them—what does Grinder Bros care if I’m ill? Never mind,
mother, I’ll rise above ’em all yet. Give me the clock, mother.”
She gave him the clock,
and he proceeded to wind it up and set the alarm.
“There’s somethin’ wrong
with the gong,” he muttered, “it’s gone wrong two nights now, but I’ll chance
it. I’ll set the alarm at five, that’ll give me time to dress and git there
early. I wish I hadn’t to walk so far.”
He paused to read some
words engraved round the dial:
Early to bed and early to rise
Makes a man healthy and wealthy and wise.
He had read the verse
often before, and was much taken with the swing and rhythm of it. He had
repeated it to himself, over and over again, without reference to the sense or
philosophy of it. He had never dreamed of doubting anything in print—and this
was engraved. But now a new light seemed to dawn upon him. He studied the
sentence awhile, and then read it aloud for the second time. He turned it over
in his mind again in silence.
“Mother!” he said
suddenly, “I think it lies.” She placed the clock on the shelf, tucked him into
his little bed on the sofa, and blew out the light.
Arvie seemed to sleep,
but she lay awake thinking of her troubles. Of her husband carried home dead from
his work one morning; of her eldest son who only came to loaf on her when he
was out of jail; of the second son, who had feathered his nest in another city,
and had no use for her any longer; of the next—poor delicate little
Arvie—struggling manfully to help, and wearing his young life out at Grinder
Bros when he should be at school; of the five helpless younger children asleep
in the next room: of her hard life—scrubbing floors from half-past five till
eight, and then starting her day’s work—washing!—of having to rear her children
in the atmosphere of the slums, because she could not afford to move and pay a
higher rent; and of the rent.
Arvie commenced to
mutter in his sleep.
“Can’t you get to sleep,
Arvie?” she asked. “Is your throat sore? Can I get anything for you?”
“I’d like to sleep,” he
muttered, dreamily, “but it won’t seem more’n a moment before—before—”
“Before what, Arvie?”
she asked, quickly, fearing that he was becoming delirious.
“Before the alarm goes
off!”
He was talking in his
sleep.
She rose gently and put
the alarm on two hours. “He can rest now,” she whispered to herself.
Presently Arvie sat bolt
upright, and said quickly, “Mother! I thought the alarm went off!” Then,
without waiting for an answer, he lay down as suddenly and slept.
The rain had cleared
away, and a bright, starry dome was over sea and city, over slum and villa
alike; but little of it could be seen from the hovel in Jones’s Alley, save a
glimpse of the Southern Cross and a few stars round it. It was what ladies call
a “lovely night,” as seen from the house of Grinder—“Grinderville”—with its
moonlit terraces and gardens sloping gently to the water, and its windows lit
up for an Easter ball, and its reception-rooms thronged by its own exclusive
set, and one of its charming and accomplished daughters melting a select party
to tears by her pathetic recitation about a little crossing sweeper.
There was something
wrong with the alarm-clock, or else Mrs Aspinall had made a mistake, for the
gong sounded startlingly in the dead of night. She woke with a painful start,
and lay still, expecting to hear Arvie get up; but he made no sign. She turned
a white, frightened face towards the sofa where he lay—the light from the
alley’s solitary lamp on the pavement above shone down through the window, and
she saw that he had not moved.
Why didn’t the clock
wake him? He was such a light sleeper! “Arvie!” she called; no answer. “Arvie!”
she called again, with a strange ring of remonstrance mingling with the terror
in her voice. Arvie never answered.
“Oh! my God!” she
moaned.
She rose and stood by
the sofa. Arvie lay on his back with his arms folded—a favourite sleeping
position of his; but his eyes were wide open and staring upwards as though they
would stare through ceiling and roof to the place where God ought to be.
An oblong hut, walled
with blue-grey hardwood slabs, adzed at the ends and set horizontally between
the round sapling studs; high roof of the eternal galvanized iron. A big
rubbish heap lies about a yard to the right of the door, which opens from the
middle of one of the side walls; it might be the front or the back wall—there
is nothing to fix it. Two rows of rough bunks run round three sides of the
interior; and a fire-place occupies one end—the kitchen end. Sleeping, eating,
gambling and cooking accommodation for thirty men in about eighteen by forty
feet.
The rouseabouts and
shearers use the hut in common during shearing. Down the centre of the place
runs a table made of stakes driven into the ground, with cross-pieces supporting
a top of half-round slabs set with the flat sides up, and affording a few level
places for soup-plates; on each side are crooked, unbarked poles laid in short
forks, to serve as seats. The poles are worn smoothest opposite the level
places on the table. The floor is littered with rubbish—old wool-bales,
newspapers, boots, worn-out shearing pants, rough bedding, etc., raked out of
the bunks in impatient search for missing articles—signs of a glad and eager
departure with cheques when the shed last cut out.
To the west is a dam,
holding back a broad, shallow sheet of grey water, with dead trees standing in
it.
Further up along this
water is a brush shearing-shed, a rough framework of poles with a brush roof.
This kind of shed has the advantage of being cooler than iron. It is not
rain-proof, but shearers do not work in rainy weather; shearing even slightly
damp sheep is considered the surest and quickest way to get the worst kind of
rheumatism. The floor is covered with rubbish from the roof, and here and there
lies a rusty pair of shears. A couple of dry tar-pots hang by nails in the
posts. The “board” is very uneven and must be bad for sweeping. The pens are
formed by round, crooked stakes driven into the ground in irregular lines, and
the whole business reminds us of the “cubby-house” style of architecture of our
childhood.
Opposite stands the
wool-shed, built entirely of galvanized iron; a blinding object to start out of
the scrub on a blazing, hot day. God forgive the man who invented galvanized iron,
and the greed which introduced it into Australia: you could not get worse
roofing material for a hot country.
The wool-washing,
soap-boiling, and wool-pressing arrangements are further up the dam.
“Government House” is a mile away, and is nothing better than a bush hut; this
station belongs to a company. And the company belongs to a bank. And the banks
belong to England, mostly.
Mulga scrub all round,
and, in between, patches of reddish sand where the grass ought to be.
It is New Year’s Eve.
Half a dozen travellers are camping in the hut, having a spell. They need it,
for there are twenty miles of dry lignum plain between here and the government
bore to the east; and about eighteen miles of heavy, sandy, cleared road
north-west to the next water in that direction. With one exception, the men do
not seem hard up; at least, not as that condition is understood by the swagmen
of these times. The least lucky one of the lot had three weeks’ work in a shed
last season, and there might probably be five pounds amongst the whole crowd.
They are all shearers, or at least they say they are. Some might be only
“rousers.”
These men have a kind of
stock hope of getting a few stragglers to shear somewhere; but their main
object is to live till next shearing. In order to do this they must tramp for
tucker, and trust to the regulation—and partly mythical—pint of flour, and bit
of meat, or tea and sugar, and to the goodness of cooks and storekeepers and
boundary-riders. You can only depend on getting tucker once at
one place; then you must tramp on to the next. If you cannot get it once you
must go short; but there is a lot of energy in an empty stomach. If you get an
extra supply you may camp for a day and have a spell. To live you must walk. To
cease walking is to die.
The Exception is an
outcast amongst bush outcasts, and looks better fitted for Sydney Domain. He
lies on the bottom of a galvanized-iron case, with a piece of blue blanket for
a pillow. He is dressed in a blue cotton jumper, a pair of very old and ragged
tweed trousers, and one boot and one slipper. He found the slipper in the last
shed, and the boot in the rubbish-heap here. When his own boots gave out he
walked a hundred and fifty miles with his feet roughly sewn up in pieces of
sacking from an old wool-bale. No sign of a patch, or an attempt at mending
anywhere about his clothes, and that is a bad sign; when a swagman leaves off
mending or patching his garments, his case is about hopeless. The Exception’s
swag consists of the aforesaid bit of blanket rolled up and tied with pieces of
rag. He has no water-bag; carries his water in a billy; and how he manages
without a bag is known only to himself. He has read every scrap of print within
reach, and now lies on his side, with his face to the wall and one arm thrown
up over his head; the jumper is twisted back, and leaves his skin bare from hip
to arm-pit. His lower face is brutal, his eyes small and shifty, and ugly
straight lines run across his low forehead. He says very little, but scowls
most of the time—poor devil. He might be, or at least seem, a
totally different man under more favourable conditions. He is probably a free
labourer.
A very sick jackaroo
lies in one of the bunks. A sandy, sawney-looking Bourke native takes great
interest in this wreck; watches his every movement as though he never saw a
sick man before. The men lie about in the bunks, or the shade of the hut, and
rest, and read all the soiled and mutilated scraps of literature they can rake
out of the rubbish, and sleep, and wake up swimming in perspiration, and growl
about the heat.
It is hot,
and two shearers’ cats—a black and a white one—sit in one of the upper bunks
with their little red tongues out, panting like dogs. These cats live well
during shearing, and take their chances the rest of the year—just as shed
rouseabouts have to do. They seem glad to see the traveller come; he makes
things more homelike. They curl and sidle affectionately round the table-legs,
and the legs of the men, and purr, and carry their masts up, and regard the
cooking with feline interest and approval, and look as cheerful as cats can—and
as contented. God knows how many tired, dusty, and sockless ankles they rub
against in their time.
Now and then a man takes
his tucker-bags and goes down to the station for a bit of flour, or meat, or
tea, or sugar, choosing the time when the manager is likely to be out on the
run. The cook here is a “good cook,” from a traveller’s point of view; too good
to keep his place long.
Occasionally someone
gets some water in an old kerosene-tin and washes a shirt or pair of trousers,
and a pair or two of socks—or foot-rags—(Prince Alfreds they call them). That
is, he soaks some of the stiffness out of these articles.
Three times a day the
black billies and cloudy nose-bags are placed on the table. The men eat in a
casual kind of way, as though it were only a custom of theirs, a matter of
form—a habit which could be left off if it were worth while.
The Exception is heard
to remark to no one in particular that he’ll give all he has for a square meal.
“An’ ye’d get it cheap,
begod!” says a big Irish shearer. “Come and have dinner with us; there’s plenty
there.”
But the Exception only
eats a few mouthfuls, and his appetite is gone; his stomach has become
contracted, perhaps.
The Wreck cannot eat at
all, and seems internally disturbed by the sight of others eating.
One of the men is a
cook, and this morning he volunteered good-naturedly to bake bread for the
rest. His mates amuse themselves by chyacking him.
“I’ve heard he’s a dirty
and slow cook,” says one, addressing Eternity.
“Ah!” says the cook,
“you’ll be glad to come to me for a pint of flour when I’m cooking and you’re
on the track, some day.”
Sunset. Some of the men
sit at the end of the hut to get the full benefit of a breeze which comes from
the west. A great bank of rain-clouds is rising in that direction, but no one
says he thinks it will rain; neither does anybody think we’re going to have
some rain. None but the greenest jackaroo would venture that risky and foolish
observation. Out here, it can look more like rain without raining, and continue
to do so for a longer time, than in most other places.
The Wreck went down to
the station this afternoon to get some medicine and bush medical advice. The
Bourke sawney helped him to do up his swag; he did it with an awed look and
manner, as though he thought it a great distinction to be allowed to touch the
belongings of such a curiosity. It was afterwards generally agreed that it was
a good idea for the Wreck to go to the station; he would get some physic and, a
bit of tucker to take him on. “For they’ll give tucker to a sick man sooner
than to a chap what’s all right.”
The Exception is rooting
about in the rubbish for the other blucher boot.
The men get a little
more sociable, and “feel” each other to find out who’s “Union,” and talk about
water, and exchange hints as to good tucker-tracks, and discuss the strike, and
curse the squatter (which is all they have got to curse), and growl about Union
leaders, and tell lies against each other sociably. There are tally lies; and
lies about getting tucker by trickery; and
long-tramp-with-heavy-swag-and-no-water lies; and lies about getting the best
of squatters and bosses-over-the-board; and droving, fighting, racing, gambling
and drinking lies. Lies ad libitum; and every true Australian
bushman must try his best to tell a bigger out-back lie than the last
bush-liar.
Pat is not quite easy in
his mind. He found an old pair of pants in the scrub this morning, and cannot
decide whether they are better than his own, or, rather, whether his own are
worse—if that’s possible. He does not want to increase the weight of his swag
unnecessarily by taking both pairs. He reckons that the pants were thrown away
when the shed cut out last, but then they might have been lying out exposed to
the weather for a longer period. It is rather an important question, for it is
very annoying, after you’ve mended and patched an old pair of pants, to find,
when a day or two further on the track, that they are more rotten than the pair
you left behind.
There is some growling
about the water here, and one of the men makes a billy of tea. The water is
better cooked. Pint-pots and sugar-bags are groped out and brought to the
kitchen hut, and each man fills his pannikin; the Irishman keeps a thumb on the
edge of his, so as to know when the pot is full, for it is very dark, and there
is no more firewood. You soon know this way, especially if you are in the habit
of pressing lighted tobacco down into your pipe with the top of your thumb. The
old slush-lamps are all burnt out.
Each man feels for the
mouth of his sugar-bag with one hand while he keeps the bearings of his pot
with the other.
The Irishman has lost
his match-box, and feels for it all over the table without success. He stoops
down with his hands on his knees, gets the table-top on a level with the
flicker of firelight, and “moons” the object, as it were.
Time to turn in. It is
very dark inside and bright moonlight without; every crack seems like a ghost
peering in. Some of the men will roll up their swags on the morrow and depart;
some will take another day’s spell. It is all according to the tucker.
While out boating one
Sunday afternoon on a billabong across the river, we saw a young man on
horseback driving some horses along the bank. He said it was a fine day, and
asked if the Water was deep there. The joker of our party said it was deep
enough to drown him, and he laughed and rode farther up. We didn’t take much
notice of him.
Next day a funeral
gathered at a corner pub and asked each other in to have a drink while waiting
for the hearse. They passed away some of the time dancing jigs to a piano in
the bar parlour. They passed away the rest of the time skylarking and fighting.
The defunct was a young
Union labourer, about twenty-five, who had been drowned the previous day while
trying to swim some horses across a billabong of the Darling.
He was almost a stranger
in town, and the fact of his having been a Union man accounted for the funeral.
The police found some Union papers in his swag, and called at the General
Labourers’ Union Office for information about him. That’s how we knew. The
secretary had very little information to give. The departed was a “Roman,” and
the majority of the town were otherwise—but Unionism is stronger than creed.
Liquor, however, is stronger than Unionism; and, when the hearse presently
arrived, more than two-thirds of the funeral were unable to follow.
The procession numbered
fifteen, fourteen souls following the broken shell of a soul. Perhaps not one
of the fourteen possessed a soul any more than the corpse did—but that doesn’t
matter.
Four or five of the
funeral, who were boarders at the pub, borrowed a trap which the landlord used
to carry passengers to and from the railway station. They were strangers to us
who were on foot, and we to them. We were all strangers to the corpse.
A horseman, who looked
like a drover just returned from a big trip, dropped into our dusty wake and
followed us a few hundred yards, dragging his packhorse behind him, but a
friend made wild and demonstrative signals from a hotel veranda—hooking at the
air in front with his right hand and jobbing his left thumb over his shoulder
in the direction of the bar—so the drover hauled off and didn’t catch up to us
any more. He was a stranger to the entire show.
We walked in twos. There
were three twos. It was very hot and dusty; the heat rushed in fierce dazzling
rays across every iron roof and light-coloured wall that was turned to the sun.
One or two pubs closed respectfully until we got past. They closed their bar
doors and the patrons went in and out through some side or back entrance for a
few minutes. Bushmen seldom grumble at an inconvenience of this sort, when it
is caused by a funeral. They have too much respect for the dead.
On the way to the
cemetery we passed three shearers sitting on the shady side of a fence. One was
drunk—very drunk. The other two covered their right ears with their hats, out
of respect for the departed—whoever he might have been—and one of them kicked
the drunk and muttered something to him.
He straightened himself
up, stared, and reached helplessly for his hat, which he shoved half off and
then on again. Then he made a great effort to pull himself together—and
succeeded. He stood up, braced his back against the fence, knocked off his hat,
and remorsefully placed his foot on it—to keep it off his head till the funeral
passed.
A tall, sentimental
drover, who walked by my side, cynically quoted Byronic verses suitable to the
occasion—to death—and asked with pathetic humour whether we thought the dead
man’s ticket would be recognized “over yonder.” It was a G.L.U. ticket, and the
general opinion was that it would be recognized.
Presently my friend
said:
“You remember when we
were in the boat yesterday, we saw a man driving some horses along the bank?”
“Yes.”
He nodded at the hearse
and said “Well, that’s him.”
I thought awhile.
“I didn’t take any
particular notice of him,” I said. “He said something, didn’t he?”
“Yes; said it was a fine
day. You’d have taken more notice if you’d known that he was doomed to die in
the hour, and that those were the last words he would say to any man in this
world.”
“To be sure,” said a
full voice from the rear. “If ye’d known that, ye’d have prolonged the
conversation.”
We plodded on across the
railway line and along the hot, dusty road which ran to the cemetery, some of
us talking about the accident, and lying about the narrow escapes we had had
ourselves. Presently someone said:
“There’s the Devil.”
I looked up and saw a
priest standing in the shade of the tree by the cemetery gate.
The hearse was drawn up
and the tail-boards were opened. The funeral extinguished its right ear with
its hat as four men lifted the coffin out and laid it over the grave. The
priest—a pale, quiet young fellow—stood under the shade of a sapling which grew
at the head of the grave. He took off his hat, dropped it carelessly on the
ground, and proceeded to business. I noticed that one or two heathens winced
slightly when the holy water was sprinkled on the coffin. The drops quickly
evaporated, and the little round black spots they left were soon dusted over;
but the spots showed, by contrast, the cheapness and shabbiness of the cloth
with which the coffin was covered. It seemed black before; now it looked a
dusky grey.
Just here man’s
ignorance and vanity made a farce of the funeral. A big, bull-necked publican,
with heavy, blotchy features, and a supremely ignorant expression, picked up
the priest’s straw hat and held it about two inches over the head of his
reverence during the whole of the service. The father, be it remembered, was
standing in the shade. A few shoved their hats on and off uneasily, struggling
between their disgust for the living and their respect for the dead. The hat
had a conical crown and a brim sloping down all round like a sunshade, and the
publican held it with his great red claw spread over the crown. To do the
priest justice, perhaps he didn’t notice the incident. A stage priest or parson
in the same position might have said, “Put the hat down, my friend; is not the
memory of our departed brother worth more than my complexion?” A wattle-bark
layman might have expressed himself in stronger language, none the less to the
point. But my priest seemed unconscious of what was going on. Besides, the
publican was a great and important pillar of the church. He couldn’t, as an
ignorant and conceited ass, lose such a good opportunity of asserting his
faithfulness and importance to his church.
The grave looked very
narrow under the coffin, and I drew a breath of relief when the box slid easily
down. I saw a coffin get stuck once, at Rookwood, and it had to be yanked out
with difficulty, and laid on the sods at the feet of the heart-broken
relations, who howled dismally while the grave-diggers widened the hole. But
they don’t cut contracts so fine in the West. Our grave-digger was not
altogether bowelless, and, out of respect for that human quality described as
“feelin’s,” he scraped up some light and dusty soil and threw it down to deaden
the fall of the clay lumps on the coffin. He also tried to steer the first few
shovelfuls gently down against the end of the grave with the back of the shovel
turned outwards, but the hard dry Darling River clods rebounded and knocked all
the same. It didn’t matter much—nothing does. The fall of lumps of clay on a
stranger’s coffin doesn’t sound any different from the fall of the same things
on an ordinary wooden box—at least I didn’t notice anything awesome or unusual
in the sound; but, perhaps, one of us—the most sensitive—might have been
impressed by being reminded of a burial of long ago, when the thump of every
sod jolted his heart.
I have left out the
wattle—because it wasn’t there. I have also neglected to mention the
heart-broken old mate, with his grizzled head bowed and great pearly drops
streaming down his rugged cheeks. He was absent—he was probably “Out Back.” For
similar reasons I have omitted reference to the suspicious moisture in the eyes
of a bearded bush ruffian named Bill. Bill failed to turn up, and the only
moisture was that which was induced by the heat. I have left out the “sad
Australian sunset” because the sun was not going down at the time. The burial
took place exactly at midday.
The dead bushman’s name
was Jim, apparently; but they found no portraits, nor locks of hair, nor any
love letters, nor anything of that kind in his swag—not even a reference to his
mother; only some papers relating to Union matters. Most of us didn’t know the
name till we saw it on the coffin; we knew him as “that poor chap that got
drowned yesterday.”
“So his name’s James
Tyson,” said my drover acquaintance, looking at the plate.
“Why! Didn’t you know
that before?” I asked.
“No; but I knew he was a
Union man.”
It turned out,
afterwards, that J.T. wasn’t his real name—only “the name he went by.” Anyhow
he was buried by it, and most of the “Great Australian Dailies” have mentioned
in their brevity columns that a young man named James John Tyson was drowned in
a billabong of the Darling last Sunday.
We did hear, later on,
what his real name was; but if we ever chance to read it in the “Missing
Friends Column,” we shall not be able to give any information to heart-broken
mother or sister or wife, nor to anyone who could let him hear something to his
advantage—for we have already forgotten the name.
“I’d been away from home
for eight years,” said Mitchell to his mate, as they dropped their swags in the
mulga shade and sat down. “I hadn’t written a letter—kept putting it off, and a
blundering fool of a fellow that got down the day before me told the old folks
that he’d heard I was dead.”
Here he took a pull at
his water-bag.
“When I got home they
were all in mourning for me. It was night, and the girl that opened the door
screamed and fainted away like a shot.”
He lit his pipe.
“Mother was upstairs
howling and moaning in a chair, with all the girls boo-hoo-ing round her for
company. The old man was sitting in the back kitchen crying to himself.”
He put his hat down on
the ground, dinted in the crown, and poured some water into the hollow for his
cattle-pup.
“The girls came rushing
down. Mother was so pumped out that she couldn’t get up. They thought at first
I was a ghost, and then they all tried to get holt of me at once—nearly
smothered me. Look at that pup! You want to carry a tank of water on a dry
stretch when you’ve got a pup that drinks as much as two men.”
He poured a drop more
water into the top of his hat.
“Well, mother screamed
and nearly fainted when she saw me. Such a picnic you never saw. They kept it
up all night. I thought the old cove was gone off his chump. The old woman
wouldn’t let go my hand for three mortal hours. Have you got the knife?”
He cut up some more
tobacco.
“All next day the house
was full of neighbours, and the first to come was an old sweetheart of mine; I
never thought she cared for me till then. Mother and the girls made me swear
never to go away any more; and they kept watching me, and hardly let me go
outside for fear I’d—”
“Get drunk?”
“No—you’re smart—for
fear I’d clear. At last I swore on the Bible that I’d never leave home while
the old folks were alive; and then mother seemed easier in her mind.”
He rolled the pup over
and examined his feet. “I expect I’ll have to carry him a bit—his feet are
sore. Well, he’s done pretty well this morning, and anyway he won’t drink so
much when he’s carried.”
“You broke your promise
about leaving home,” said his mate.
Mitchell stood up,
stretched himself, and looked dolefully from his heavy swag to the wide, hot,
shadeless cotton-bush plain ahead.
“Oh, yes,” he yawned, “I
stopped at home for a week, and then they began to growl because I couldn’t get
any work to do.”
The mate guffawed and
Mitchell grinned. They shouldered the swags, with the pup on top of Mitchell’s,
took up their billies and water-bags, turned their unshaven faces to the wide,
hazy distance, and left the timber behind them.
Draw a wire fence and a
few ragged gums, and add some scattered sheep running away from the train. Then
you’ll have the bush all along the New South Wales western line from Bathurst
on.
The railway towns
consist of a public house and a general store, with a square tank and a
school-house on piles in the nearer distance. The tank stands at the end of the
school and is not many times smaller than the building itself. It is safe to
call the pub “The Railway Hotel,” and the store “The Railway Stores,” with an
“s.” A couple of patient, ungroomed hacks are probably standing outside the
pub, while their masters are inside having a drink—several drinks. Also it’s
safe to draw a sundowner sitting listlessly on a bench on the veranda, reading
the Bulletin. The Railway Stores seem to exist only in the shadow
of the pub, and it is impossible to conceive either as being independent of the
other. There is sometimes a small, oblong weather-board building—unpainted, and
generally leaning in one of the eight possible directions, and perhaps with a
twist in another—which, from its half-obliterated sign, seems to have started
as a rival to the Railway Stores; but the shutters are up and the place empty.
The only town I saw that
differed much from the above consisted of a box-bark humpy with a clay chimney,
and a woman standing at the door throwing out the wash-up water.
By way of variety, the
artist might make a water-colour sketch of a fettler’s tent on the line, with a
billy hanging over the fire in front, and three fettlers standing round filling
their pipes.
Slop sac suits, red
faces, and old-fashioned, flat-brimmed hats, with wire round the brims, begin
to drop into the train on the other side of Bathurst; and here and there a hat
with three inches of crape round the crown, which perhaps signifies death in
the family at some remote date, and perhaps doesn’t. Sometimes, I believe, it
only means grease under the band. I notice that when a bushman puts crape round
his hat he generally leaves it there till the hat wears out, or another friend
dies. In the latter case, he buys a new piece of crape. This outward sign of
bereavement usually has a jolly red face beneath it. Death is about the only
cheerful thing in the bush.
We crossed the
Macquarie—a narrow, muddy gutter with a dog swimming across, and three goats
interested.
A little farther on we
saw the first sundowner. He carried a Royal Alfred, and had a billy in one hand
and a stick in the other. He was dressed in a tail-coat turned yellow, a print
shirt, and a pair of moleskin trousers, with big square calico patches on the
knees; and his old straw hat was covered with calico. Suddenly he slipped his
swag, dropped his billy, and ran forward, boldly flourishing the stick. I
thought that he was mad, and was about to attack the train, but he wasn’t; he
was only killing a snake. I didn’t have time to see whether he cooked the snake
or not—perhaps he only thought of Adam.
Somebody told me that
the country was very dry on the other side of Nevertire. It is. I wouldn’t like
to sit down on it any where. The least horrible spot in the bush, in a dry
season, is where the bush isn’t—where it has been cleared away and a green crop
is trying to grow. They talk of settling people on the land! Better
settle in it. I’d rather settle on the water; at least, until
some gigantic system of irrigation is perfected in the West.
Along about Byrock we
saw the first shearers. They dress like the unemployed, but differ from that
body in their looks of independence. They sat on trucks and wool-bales and the
fence, watching the train, and hailed Bill, and Jim, and Tom, and asked how
those individuals were getting on.
Here we came across soft
felt hats with straps round the crowns, and full-bearded faces under them. Also
a splendid-looking black tracker in a masher uniform and a pair of Wellington
boots.
One or two square-cuts
and stand-up collars struggle dismally through to the bitter end. Often a
member of the unemployed starts cheerfully out, with a letter from the
Government Labour Bureau in his pocket, and nothing else. He has an idea that
the station where he has the job will be within easy walking distance of
Bourke. Perhaps he thinks there’ll be a cart or a buggy waiting for him. He
travels for a night and day without a bite to eat, and, on arrival, he finds
that the station is eighty or a hundred miles away. Then he has to explain
matters to a publican and a coach-driver. God bless the publican and the
coach-driver! God forgive our social system!
Native industry was
represented at one place along the line by three tiles, a chimney-pot, and a
length of piping on a slab.
Somebody said to me,
“Yer wanter go out back, young man, if yer wanter see the country. Yer wanter
get away from the line.” I don’t wanter; I’ve been there.
You could go to the
brink of eternity so far as Australia is concerned and yet meet an animated
mummy of a swagman who will talk of going “out back.” Out upon the out-back
fiend!
About Byrock we met the
bush liar in all his glory. He was dressed like—like a bush larrikin. His name
was Jim. He had been to a ball where some blank had “touched” his blanky
overcoat. The overcoat had a cheque for ten “quid” in the pocket. He didn’t
seem to feel the loss much. “Wot’s ten quid?” He’d been everywhere, including
the Gulf country. He still had three or four sheds to go to. He had telegrams
in his pocket from half a dozen squatters and supers offering him pens on any
terms. He didn’t give a blank whether he took them or no. He thought at first
he had the telegrams on him but found that he had left them in the pocket of
the overcoat aforesaid. He had learned butchering in a day. He was a bit of a
scrapper himself and talked a lot about the ring. At the last station where he
shore he gave the super the father of a hiding. The super was a big chap, about
six-foot-three, and had knocked out Paddy Somebody in one round. He worked with
a man who shore four hundred sheep in nine hours.
Here a quiet-looking
bushman in a corner of the carriage grew restless, and presently he opened his
mouth and took the liar down in about three minutes.
At 5.30 we saw a long
line of camels moving out across the sunset. There’s something snaky about
camels. They remind me of turtles and goannas.
Somebody said, “Here’s
Bourke.”
The yarn was all lies, I
suppose; but it wasn’t bad. A city bushman told it, of course, and he told it
in the travellers’ hut.
“As true’s God hears me
I never meant to desert her in cold blood,” he said. “We’d only been married
about two years, and we’d got along grand together; but times was hard, and I
had to jump at the first chance of a job, and leave her with her people, an’ go
up-country.”
He paused and fumbled
with his pipe until all ears were brought to bear on him.
“She was a beauty, and
no mistake; she was far too good for me—I often wondered how she came to have a
chap like me.”
He paused again, and the
others thought over it—and wondered too, perhaps.
The joker opened his
lips to speak, but altered his mind about it.
“Well, I travelled up
into Queensland, and worked back into Victoria ’n’ South Australia, an’ I wrote
home pretty reg’lar and sent what money I could. Last I got down on to the
south-western coast of South Australia—an’ there I got mixed up with another
woman—you know what that means, boys?”
Sympathetic silence.
“Well, this went on for
two years, and then the other woman drove me to drink. You know what a woman
can do when the devil’s in her?”
Sound between a sigh and
a groan from Lally Thompson. “My oath,” he said, sadly.
“You should have made
it three years, Jack,” interposed the joker; “you said two
years before.” But he was suppressed.
“Well, I got free of
them both, at last—drink and the woman, I mean; but it took another—it took a
couple of years to pull myself straight—”
Here the joker opened
his mouth again, but was warmly requested to shut it.
“Then, chaps, I got
thinking. My conscience began to hurt me, and—and hurt worse every day. It
nearly drove me to drink again. Ah, boys, a man—if he is a man—can’t expect to
wrong a woman and escape scot-free in the end.” (Sigh from Lally Thompson.)
“It’s the one thing that always comes home to a man, sooner or later—you know
what that means, boys.”
Lally Thompson: “My
oath!”
The joker: “Dry up yer
crimson oath! What do you know about women?”
Cries of “Order!”
“Well,” continued the
story-teller, “I got thinking. I heard that my wife had broken her heart when I
left her, and that made matters worse. I began to feel very bad about it. I
felt mean. I felt disgusted with myself. I pictured my poor, ill-treated,
little wife and children in misery and poverty, and my conscience wouldn’t let
me rest night or day”—(Lally Thompson seemed greatly moved)—“so at last I made
up my mind to be a man, and make—what’s the word?”
“Reparation,” suggested
the joker.
“Yes, so I slaved like a
nigger for a year or so, got a few pounds together and went to find my wife. I
found out that she was living in a cottage in Burwood, Sydney, and struggling
through the winter on what she’d saved from the money her father left her.
“I got a shave and
dressed up quiet and decent. I was older-looking and more subdued like, and I’d
got pretty grey in those few years that I’d been making a fool of myself; and,
some how, I felt rather glad about it, because I reckoned she’d notice it first
thing—she was always quick at noticing things—and forgive me all the quicker.
Well, I waylaid the school kids that evening, and found out mine—a little boy
and a girl—and fine youngsters they were. The girl took after her mother, and
the youngster was the dead spit o’ me. I gave ’em half a crows each and told
them to tell their mother that someone would come when the sun went down.”
Bogan Bill nodded
approvingly.
“So at sundown I went
and knocked at the door. It opened and there stood my little wife looking
prettier than ever—only careworn.”
Long, impressive pause.
“Well, Jack, what did
she do?” asked Bogan.
“She didn’t do nothing.”
“Well, Jack, and what
did she say?”
Jack sighed and
straightened himself up: “She said—she said—‘Well, so you’ve come back.’”
“Painful silence.
“Well, Jack, and what
did you say?”
“I said yes.”
“Well, and so you had!”
said Tom Moonlight.
“It wasn’t that, Tom,”
said Jack sadly and wearily—“It was the way she said it!”
Lally Thompson rubbed
his eyes: “And what did you do, Jack?” he asked gently.
“I stayed for a year,
and then I deserted her again—but meant it that time.”
“Ah, well! It’s time to
turn in.”
ANOTHER OF MITCHELL’S PLANS FOR THE FUTURE
“I’ll get down among the
cockies along the Lachlan, or some of these rivers,” said Mitchell, throwing
down his swag beneath a big tree. “A man stands a better show down there. It’s
a mistake to come out back. I knocked around a good deal down there among the
farms. Could always get plenty of tucker, and a job if I wanted it. One cocky I
worked for wanted me to stay with him for good. Sorry I didn’t. I’d have been
better off now. I was treated more like one of the family, and there was a
couple of good-looking daughters. One of them was clean gone on me. There are
some grand girls down that way. I always got on well with the girls, because I
could play the fiddle and sing a bit. They’ll be glad to see me when I get back
there again, I know. I’ll be all right—no more bother about tucker. I’ll just
let things slide as soon as I spot the house. I’ll bet my boots the kettle will
be boiling, and everything in the house will be on the table before I’m there
twenty minutes. And the girls will be running to meet the old cocky when he
comes riding home at night, and they’ll let down the sliprails, and ask him to
guess ‘who’s up at our place?’ Yes, I’ll find a job with some old cocky, with a
good-looking daughter or two. I’ll get on ploughing if I can; that’s the sort
of work I like; best graft about a farm.
“By and by the cocky’ll
have a few sheep he wants shorn, and one day he’ll say to me, ‘Jack, if you
hear of a shearer knockin’ round let me know—I’ve got a few sheep I want
shore.’
“‘How many have you
got?’ I’ll say.
“‘Oh, about fifteen
hundred.’
“‘And what d’you think
of giving?’
“‘Well, about
twenty-five bob a hundred, but if a shearer sticks out for thirty, send him up
to talk with me. I want to get ’em shore as soon as possible.’
“‘It’s all right,’ I’ll
say, ‘you needn’t bother; I’ll shear your sheep.’
“‘Why,’ he’ll say,
‘can you shear?’
“‘Shear? Of course I
can! I shore before you were born.’ It won’t matter if he’s twice as old as me.
“So I’ll shear his sheep
and make a few pounds, and he’ll be glad and all the more eager to keep me on,
so’s to always have someone to shear his sheep. But by and by I’ll get tired of
stopping in the one place and want to be on the move, so I’ll tell him I’m
going to leave.
“‘Why, what do you want
to go for?’ he’ll say, surprised, ‘ain’t you satisfied?’
“‘Oh, yes, I’m
satisfied, but I want a change.’
“‘Oh, don’t go,’ he’ll
say; ‘stop and we’ll call it twenty-five bob a week.’
“But I’ll tell him I’m
off—wouldn’t stay for a hundred when I’d made up my mind; so, when he sees he
can’t persuade me he’ll get a bit stiff and say:
“‘Well, what about that
there girl? Are you goin’ to go away and leave her like that?’
“‘Why, what d’yer mean?’
I’ll say. ‘Leave her like what?’ I won’t pretend to know what he’s driving at.
“‘Oh!’ he’ll say, ‘you
know very well what I mean. The question is: Are you going to marry the
girl or not?’
“I’ll see that things
are gettin’ a little warm and that I’m in a corner, so I’ll say:
“‘Why, I never thought
about it. This is pretty sudden and out of the common, isn’t it? I don’t mind
marrying the girl if she’ll have me. Why! I haven’t asked her yet!’
“‘Well, look here,’
he’ll say, ‘if you agree to marry the girl—and I’ll make you marry her, any
road—I’ll give you that there farm over there and a couple of hundred to start
on.’
“So, I’ll marry her and
settle down and be a cocky myself and if you ever happen to be knocking round
there hard up, you needn’t go short of tucker a week or two; but don’t come
knocking round the house when I’m not at home.”
Steelman was a hard
case. If you were married, and settled down, and were so unfortunate as to have
known Steelman in other days, he would, if in your neighbourhood and dead-beat,
be sure to look you up. He would find you anywhere, no matter what precautions
you might take. If he came to your house, he would stay to tea without
invitation, and if he stayed to tea, he would ask you to “fix up a shake-down
on the floor, old man,” and put him up for the night; and, if he stopped all
night, he’d remain—well, until something better turned up.
There was no shaking off
Steelman. He had a way about him which would often make it appear as if you had
invited him to stay, and pressed him against his roving inclination, and were
glad to have him round for company, while he remained only out of pure goodwill
to you. He didn’t like to offend an old friend by refusing his invitation.
Steelman knew his men.
The married victim
generally had neither the courage nor the ability to turn him out. He was
cheerfully blind and deaf to all hints, and if the exasperated missus said
anything to him straight, he would look shocked, and reply, as likely as not:
“Why, my good woman, you
must be mad! I’m your husband’s guest!”
And if she wouldn’t cook
for him, he’d cook for himself. There was no choking him off. Few people care
to call the police in a case like this; and besides, as before remarked,
Steelman knew his men. The only way to escape from him was to move—but then, as
likely as not, he’d help pack up and come along with his portmanteau right on
top of the last load of furniture, and drive you and your wife to the verge of
madness by the calm style in which he proceeded to superintend the hanging of
your pictures.
Once he quartered
himself like this on an old schoolmate of his, named Brown, who had got married
and steady and settled down. Brown tried all ways to get rid of Steelman, but
he couldn’t do it. One day Brown said to Steelman:
“Look here, Steely, old
man, I’m very sorry, but I’m afraid we won’t be able to accommodate you any
longer—to make you comfortable, I mean. You see, a sister of the missus is
coming down on a visit for a month or two, and we ain’t got anywhere to put
her, except in your room. I wish the missus’s relations to blazes! I didn’t
marry the whole blessed family; but it seems I’ve got to keep them.”
Pause—very awkward and
painful for poor Brown. Discouraging silence from Steelman. Brown rested his
elbows on his knees, and, with a pathetic and appealing movement of his hand
across his forehead, he continued desperately:
“I’m very sorry, you
see, old man—you know I’d like you to stay—I want you to stay.... It isn’t my
fault—it’s the missus’s doings. I’ve done my best with her, but I can’t help
it. I’ve been more like a master in my own house—more comfortable—and I’ve been
better treated since I’ve had you to back me up.... I’ll feel mighty lonely,
anyway, when ycu’re gone.... But... you know... as soon as her sister goes...
you know.... ”
Here poor Brown broke
down—very sorry he had spoken at all; but Steely came to the rescue with a ray
of light.
“What’s the matter with
the little room at the back?” he asked.
“Oh, we couldn’t think
of putting you there,” said Brown, with a last effort; “it’s not fined up; you
wouldn’t be comfortable, and, besides, it’s damp, and you’d catch your death of
cold. It was never meant for anything but a wash-house. I’m sorry I didn’t get
another room built on to the house.”
“Bosh!” interrupted
Steelman, cheerfully. “Catch a cold! Here I’ve been knocking about the country
for the last five years—sleeping out in all weathers—and do you think a little
damp is going to hurt me? Pooh! What do you take me for? Don’t you bother your
head about it any more, old man; I’ll fix up the lumber-room for myself, all
right; and all you’ve got to do is to let me know when the sister-in-law
business is coming on, and I’ll shift out of my room in time for the missus to
get it ready for her. Here, have you got a bob on you? I’ll go out and get some
beer. A drop’ll do you good.”
“Well, if you can make yourself
comfortable, I’ll be only too glad for you to stay,” said Brown, wearily.
“You’d better invite
some woman you know to come on a visit, and pass her off as your sister,” said
Brown to his wife, while Steelman was gone for the beer. “I’ve made a mess of
it.”
Mrs Brown said, “I knew
you would.”
Steelman knew his men.
But at last Brown
reckoned that he could stand it no longer. The thought of it made him so wild
that he couldn’t work. He took a day off to get thoroughly worked up in, came
home that night full to the chin of indignation and Dunedin beer, and tried to
kick Steelman out. And Steelman gave him a hiding.
Next morning Steelman
was sitting beside Brown’s bed with a saucer of vinegar, some brown paper, a
raw beef-steak, and a bottle of soda.
“Well, what have you got
to say for yourself now, Brown?” he said, sternly. “Ain’t you jolly well
ashamed of yourself to come home in the beastly state you did last night, and
insult a guest in your house, to say nothing of an old friend—and perhaps the
best friend you ever had, if you only knew it? Anybody else would have given
you in charge and got you three months for the assault. You ought to have some
consideration for your wife and children, and your own character—even if you
haven’t any for your old mate’s feelings. Here, drink this, and let me fix you
up a bit; the missus has got the breakfast waiting.”
The stranger walked into
the corner grocery with the air of one who had come back after many years to
see someone who would be glad to see him. He shed his swag and stood it by the
wall with great deliberation; then he rested his elbow on the counter, stroked
his beard, and grinned quizzically at the shopman, who smiled back presently in
a puzzled way.
“Good afternoon,” said
the grocer.
“Good afternoon.”
Pause.
“Nice day,” said the
grocer.
Pause.
“Anything I can do for
you?”
“Yes; tell the old man
there’s a chap wants to speak to him for a minute.”
“Old man? What old man?”
“Hake, of course—old Ben
Hake! Ain’t he in?”
The grocer smiled.
“Hake ain’t here now.
I’m here.”
“How’s that?”
“Why, he sold out to me
ten years ago.”
“Well, I suppose I’ll
find him somewhere about town?”
“I don’t think you will.
He left Australia when he sold out. He’s—he’s dead now.”
“Dead! Old Ben Hake?”
“Yes. You knew him,
then?”
The stranger seemed to
have lost a great deal of his assurance. He turned his side to the counter,
hooked his elbow on it, and gazed out through the door along Sunset Track.
“You can give me half a
pound of nailrod,” he said, in a quiet tone—“I s’pose young Hake is in town?”
“No; the whole family
went away. I think there’s one of the sons in business in Sydney now.”
“I s’pose the M’Lachlans
are here yet?”
“No; they are not. The
old people died about five years ago; the sons are in Queensland, I think; and
both the girls are married and in Sydney.”
“Ah, well!... I see
you’ve got the railway here now.”
“Oh, yes! Six years.”
“Times is changed a
lot.”
“They are.”
“I s’pose—I s’pose you
can tell me where I’ll find old Jimmy Nowlett?”
“Jimmy Nowlett? Jimmy
Nowlett? I never heard of the name. What was he?”
“Oh, he was a
bullock-driver. Used to carry from the mountains before the railway was made.”
“Before my time,
perhaps. There’s no one of that name round here now.”
“Ah, well!... I don’t
suppose you knew the Duggans?”
“Yes, I did. The old
man’s dead, too, and the family’s gone away—Lord knows where. They weren’t much
loss, to all accounts. The sons got into trouble, I b’lieve—went to the bad.
They had a bad name here.”
“Did they? Well, they
had good hearts—at least, old Malachi Duggan and the eldest son had.... You can
give me a couple of pounds of sugar.”
“Right. I suppose it’s a
long time since you were here last?”
“Fifteen years.”
“Indeed!”
“Yes. I don’t s’pose I
remind you of anyone you know around here?”
“N—no!” said the grocer
with a smile. “I can’t say you do.”
“Ah, well! I s’pose I’ll
find the Wilds still living in the same place?”
“The Wilds? Well, no.
The old man is dead, too, and—”
“And—and where’s Jim? He
ain’t dead?”
“No; he’s married and
settled down in Sydney.”
Long pause.
“Can you—” said the
stranger, hesitatingly; “did you—I suppose you knew Mary—Mary Wild?”
“Mary?” said the grocer,
smilingly. “That was my wife’s maiden name. Would you like to see her?”
“No, no! She mightn’t
remember me!”
He reached hastily for
his swag, and shouldered it.
“Well, I must be gettin’
on.”
“I s’pose you’ll camp
here over Christmas?”
“No; there’s nothing to
stop here for—I’ll push on. I did intend to have a Christmas here—in fact, I
came a long way out of my road a-purpose.... I meant to have just one more
Christmas with old Ben Hake an’ the rest of the boys—but I didn’t know as
they’d moved on so far west. The old bush school is dyin’ out.”
There was a smile in his
eyes, but his bearded lips twitched a little.
“Things is changed. The
old houses is pretty much the same, an’ the old signs want touchin’ up and
paintin’ jest as had as ever; an’ there’s that old palin’ fence that me an’ Ben
Hake an’ Jimmy Nowlett put up twenty year ago. I’ve tramped and travelled long
ways since then. But things is changed—at least, people is.... Well, I must be
goin’. There’s nothing to keep me here. I’ll push on and get into my track
again. It’s cooler travellin’ in the night.”
“Yes, it’s been pretty
hot to-day.”
“Yes, it has. Well, s’long.”
“Good day. Merry
Christmas!”
“Eh? What? Oh, yes! Same
to you! S’long!”
“Good day!” He drifted
out and away along Sunset Track.
There is an old custom
prevalent in Australasia—and other parts, too, perhaps, for that matter—which,
we think, deserves to be written up. It might not be an “honoured” custom from
a newspaper manager’s or proprietor’s point of view, or from the point of view
(if any) occupied by the shareholders on the subject; but, nevertheless, it is
a time-honoured and a good old custom. Perhaps, for several reasons, it was
more prevalent among diggers than with the comparatively settled bushmen of
to-day—the poor, hopeless, wandering swaggy doesn’t count in the matter, for he
has neither the wherewithal nor the opportunity to honour the old custom; also
his movements are too sadly uncertain to permit of his being honoured by it. We
refer to the remailing of newspapers and journals from one mate to another.
Bill gets his paper and
reads it through conscientiously from beginning to end by candle or slush-lamp
as he lies on his back in the hut or tent with his pipe in his mouth; or,
better still, on a Sunday afternoon as he reclines on the grass in the shade,
in all the glory and comfort of a clean pair of moleskins and socks and a clean
shirt. And when he has finished reading the paper—if it is not immediately
bespoke—he turns it right side out, folds it, and puts it away where he’ll know
where to find it. The paper is generally bespoke in the following manner:
“Let’s have a look at
that paper after you, Bill, when yer done with it,” says Jack.
And Bill says:
“I just promised it to
Bob. You can get it after him.”
And, when it is finally
lent, Bill says:
“Don’t forget to give
that paper back to me when yer done with it. Don’t let any of those other
blanks get holt of it, or the chances are I won’t set eyes on it again.”
But the other blanks get
it in their turn after being referred to Bill. “You must ask Bill,” says Jack
to the next blank, “I got it from him.” And when Bill gets his paper back
finally—which is often only after much bush grumbling, accusation,
recrimination, and denial—he severely and carefully re-arranges theme pages,
folds the paper, and sticks it away up over a rafter, or behind a post or
batten, or under his pillow where it will safe. He wants that paper to send to
Jim.
Bill is but an
indifferent hand at folding, and knows little or nothing about wrappers. He
folds and re-folds the paper several times and in various ways, but the first
result is often the best, and is finally adopted. The parcel looks more ugly
than neat; but Bill puts a weight upon it so that it won’t fly open, and looks
round for a piece of string to tie it with. Sometimes he ties it firmly round
the middle, sometimes at both ends; at other times he runs the string down
inside the folds and ties it that way, or both ways, or all the ways, so as to
be sure it won’t come undone—which it doesn’t as a rule. If he can’t find a
piece of string long enough, he ties two bits together, and submits the result
to a rather severe test; and if the string is too thin, or he has to use
thread, he doubles it. Then he worries round to find out who has got the ink,
or whether anyone has seen anything of the pen; and when he gets them, he
writes the address with painful exactitude on the margin of the paper,
sometimes in two or three places. He has to think a moment before he writes;
and perhaps he’ll scratch the back of his head afterwards with an inky finger,
and regard the address with a sort of mild, passive surprise. His old mate Jim
was always plain Jim to him, and nothing else; but, in order to reach Jim, this
paper has to be addressed to—
MR JAMES
MITCHELL,
c/o J. W. Dowell,
Esq.,
Munnigrub Station—
and so on. “Mitchell”
seems strange—Bill couldn’t think of it for the moment—and so does “James.”
And, a week or so later,
over on Coolgardie, or away up in northern Queensland, or bush-felling down in
Maoriland, Jim takes a stroll up to the post office after tea on mail night. He
doesn’t expect any letters, but there might be a paper from Bill. Bill
generally sends him a newspaper. They seldom write to each other, these old
mates.
There were points, of
course, upon which Bill and Jim couldn’t agree—subjects upon which they argued
long and loud and often in the old days; and it sometimes happens that Bill
comes across an article or a paragraph which agrees with and, so to speak,
barracks for a pet theory of his as against one held by Jim; and Bill marks it
with a chuckle and four crosses at the corners—and an extra one at each side
perhaps—and sends it on to Jim; he reckons it’ll rather corner old Jim. The
crosses are not over ornamental nor artistic, but very distinct; Jim sees them
from the reverse side of the sheet first, maybe, and turns it over with
interest to see what it is. He grins a good-humoured grin as he reads—poor old
Bill is just as thick-headed and obstinate as ever—just as far gone on his old
fad. It’s rather rough on Jim, because he’s too far off to argue; but, if he’s
very earnest on the subject, he’ll sit down and write, using all his old
arguments to prove that the man who wrote that rot was a fool. This is one of
the few things that will make them write to each other. Or else Jim will wait
till he comes across a paragraph in another paper which barracks for his side
of the argument, and, in his opinion; rather knocks the stuffing out of Bill’s
man; then he marks it with more and bigger crosses and a grin, and sends it
along to Bill. They are both democrats—these old mates generally are—and at
times one comes across a stirring article or poem, and marks it with approval
and sends it along. Or it may be a good joke, or the notice of the death of an
old mate. What a wave of feeling and memories a little par can take through the
land!
Jim is a sinner and a
scoffer, and Bill is an earnest, thorough, respectable old freethinker, and
consequently they often get a War Cry or a tract sent inside
their exchanges—somebody puts it in for a joke.
Long years ago—long
years ago Bill and Jim were sweet on a rose of the bush—or a lily of the
goldfields—call her Lily King. Both courted her at the same time, and
quarrelled over her—fought over her, perhaps—and were parted by her for years.
But that’s all bygones. Perhaps she loved Bill, perhaps she loved Jim—perhaps
both; or, maybe, she wasn’t sure which. Perhaps she loved neither, and was only
stringing them on. Anyway, she didn’t marry either the one or the other. She
married another man—call him Jim Smith. And so, in after years, Bill comes
across a paragraph in a local paper, something like the following:
On July 10th, at her residence, Eureka Cottage,
Ballarat-street, Tally Town, the wife of James Smith of twins (boy and girl);
all three doing well.
And Bill marks it with a
loud chuckle and big crosses, and sends it along to Jim. Then Bill sits and
thinks and smokes, and thinks till the fire goes out, and quite forgets all
about putting that necessary patch on his pants.
And away down on
Auckland gum-fields, perhaps, Jim reads the par with a grin; then grows
serious, and sits and scrapes his gum by the flickering firelight in a
mechanical manner, and—thinks. His thoughts are far away in the back
years—faint and far, far and faint. For the old, lingering, banished pain
returns and hurts a man’s heart like the false wife who comes back again, falls
on her knees before him, and holds up her trembling arms and pleads with
swimming, upturned eyes, which are eloquent with the love she felt too late.
It is supposed to be
something to have your work published in an English magazine, to have it
published in book form, to be flattered by critics and reprinted throughout the
country press, or even to be cut up well and severely. But, after all, now we
come to think of it, we would almost as soon see a piece of ours marked with
big inky crosses in the soiled and crumpled rag that Bill or Jim gets sent him
by an old mate of his—the paper that goes thousands of miles scrawled all over
with smudgy addresses and tied with a piece of string.
MITCHELL DOESN’T BELIEVE IN THE SACK
“If ever I do get a job
again,” said Mitchell, “I’ll stick to it while there’s a hand’s turn of work to
do, and put a few pounds together. I won’t be the fool I always was. If I’d had
sense a couple of years ago, I wouldn’t be tramping through this damned sand
and mulga now. I’ll get a job on a station, or at some toff’s house, knocking
about the stables and garden, and I’ll make up my mind to settle down to graft
for four or five years.”
“But supposing you git
the sack?” said his mate.
“I won’t take it. Only
for taking the sack I wouldn’t be hard up to-day. The boss might come round and
say:
‘I won’t want you after
this week, Mitchell. I haven’t got any more work for you to do. Come up and see
me at the office presently.’
“So I’ll go up and get
my money; but I’ll be pottering round as usual on Monday, and come up to the
kitchen for my breakfast. Some time in the day the boss’ll be knocking round
and see me.
“‘Why, Mitchell,’ he’ll
say, ‘I thought you was gone.’
“‘I didn’t say I was
going,’ I’ll say. ‘Who told you that—or what made you think so?’
“‘I thought I told you
on Saturday that I wouldn’t want you any more,’ he’ll say, a bit short. ‘I
haven’t got enough work to keep a man going; I told you that; I thought you
understood. Didn’t I give you the sack on Saturday?’
“‘It’s no use;’ I’ll
say, ‘that sort of thing’s played out. I’ve been had too often that way; I’ve
been sacked once too often. Taking the sack’s been the cause of all my trouble;
I don’t believe in it. If I’d never taken the sack I’d have been a rich man
to-day; it might be all very well for horses, but it doesn’t suit me; it
doesn’t hurt you, but it hurts me. I made up my mind that when I got a place to
suit me, I’d stick in it. I’m comfortable here and satisfied, and you’ve had no
cause to find fault with me. It’s no use you trying to sack me, because I won’t
take it. I’ve been there before, and you might as well try to catch an old bird
with chaff.’
“‘Well, I won’t pay you,
and you’d better be off,’ he’ll say, trying not to grin.
“‘Never mind the money,’
I’ll say, ‘the bit of tucker won’t cost you anything, and I’ll find something
to do round the house till you have some more work. I won’t ask you for
anything, and, surely to God I’ll find enough to do to pay for my grub!’
“So I’ll potter round
and take things easy and call up at the kitchen as usual at meal times, and by
and by the boss’ll think to himself: ‘Well, if I’ve got to feed this chap I
might as well get some work out of him.’
“So he’ll find me,
something regular to do—a bit of fencing, or carpentering, or painting, or
something, and then I’ll begin to call up for my stuff again, as usual.”
We lay in camp in the
fringe of the mulga, and watched the big, red, smoky, rising moon out on the
edge of the misty plain, and smoked and thought together sociably. Our
nose-bags were nice and heavy, and we still had about a pound of nail-rod
between us.
The moon reminded my
mate, Jack Mitchell, of something—anything reminded him of something, in fact.
“Did you ever notice,” said
Jack, in a lazy tone, just as if he didn’t want to tell a yarn—“Did you ever
notice that people always shoot the moon when there’s no moon? Have you got the
matches?”
He lit up; he was always
lighting up when he was reminded of something.
“This reminds me—Have
you got the knife? My pipe’s stuffed up.”
He dug it out, loaded
afresh, and lit up again.
“I remember once, at a
pub I was staying at, I had to leave without saying good-bye to the landlord. I
didn’t know him very well at that time.
“My room was upstairs at
the back, with the window opening on to the backyard. I always carried a bit of
clothes-line in my swag or portmanteau those times. I travelled along with a
portmanteau those times. I carried the rope in case of accident, or in case of
fire, to lower my things out of the window—or hang myself, maybe, if things got
too bad. No, now I come to think of it, I carried a revolver for that, and it
was the only thing I never pawned.”
“To hang yourself with?”
asked the mate.
“Yes—you’re very smart,”
snapped Mitchell; “never mind—-. This reminds me that I got a chap at a pub to
pawn my last suit, while I stopped inside and waited for an old mate to send me
a pound; but I kept the shooter, and if he hadn’t sent it I’d have been the
late John Mitchell long ago.”
“And sometimes you
lower’d out when there wasn’t a fire.”
“Yes, that will pass;
you’re improving in the funny business. But about the yarn. There was two beds
in my room at the pub, where I had to go away without shouting for the boss,
and, as it happened, there was a strange chap sleeping in the other bed that
night, and, just as I raised the window and was going to lower my bag out, he
woke up.
“‘Now, look here,’ I
said, shaking my fist at him, like that, ‘if you say a word, I’ll stoush yer!’
“‘Well,’ he said, ‘well,
you needn’t be in such a sweat to jump down a man’s throat. I’ve got my swag
under the bed, and I was just going to ask you for the loan of the rope when
you’re done with it.’
“Well, we chummed. His
name was Tom—Tom—something, I forget the other name, but it doesn’t matter.
Have you got the matches?”
He wasted three matches,
and continued—
“There was a lot of old
galvanized iron lying about under the window, and I was frightened the swag
would make a noise; anyway, I’d have to drop the rope, and that was sure to
make a noise. So we agreed for one of us to go down and land the swag. If we
were seen going down without the swags it didn’t matter, for we could say we
wanted to go out in the yard for something.”
“If you had the swag you
might pretend you were walking in your sleep,” I suggested, for the want of
something funnier to say.
“Bosh,” said Jack, “and
get woke up with a black eye. Bushies don’t generally carry their swags out of
pubs in their sleep, or walk neither; it’s only city swells who do that.
Where’s the blessed matches?
“Well, Tom agreed to go,
and presently I saw a shadow under the window, and lowered away.
“‘All right?’ I asked in
a whisper.
“‘All right!” whispered
the shadow.
“I lowered the other
swag.
“‘All right?’
“‘All right!’ said the
shadow, and just then the moon came out.
“‘All right!’ says the
shadow.
“But it wasn’t all
right. It was the landlord himself!
“It seems he got up and
went out to the back in the night, and just happened to be coming in when my
mate Tom was sneaking out of the back door. He saw Tom, and Tom saw him, and
smoked through a hole in the palings into the scrub. The boss looked up at the
window, and dropped to it. I went down, funky enough, I can tell you, and faced
him. He said:
“‘Look here, mate, why
didn’t you come straight to me, and tell me how you was fixed, instead of
sneaking round the trouble in that fashion? There’s no occasion for it.’
“I felt mean at once,
but I said: ‘Well, you see, we didn’t know you, boss.’
“‘So it seems. Well, I
didn’t think of that. Anyway, call up your mate and come and have a drink;
we’ll talk over it afterwards.’ So I called Tom. ‘Come on,’ I shouted. ‘It’s
all right.’
“And the boss kept us a
couple of days, and then gave us as much tucker as we could carry, and a drop
of stuff and a few bob to go on the track again with.”
“Well, he was white, any
road.”
“Yes. I knew him well
after that, and only heard one man say a word against him.”
“And did you stoush
him?”
“No; I was going to, but
Tom wouldn’t let me. He said he was frightened I might make a mess of it, and
he did it himself.”
“Did what? Make a mess
of it?”
“He made a mess of the
other man that slandered that publican. I’d be funny if I was you. Where’s the
matches?”
“And could Tom fight?”
“Yes. Tom could fight.”
“Did you travel long
with him after that?”
“Ten years.”
“And where is he now?”
“Dead—Give us the
matches.”
It was Golden Gully
still, but golden in name only, unless indeed the yellow mullock heaps or the
bloom of the wattle-trees on the hillside gave it a claim to the title. But the
gold was gone from the gully, and the diggers were gone, too, after the manner
of Timon’s friends when his wealth deserted him. Golden Gully was a dreary
place, dreary even for an abandoned goldfield. The poor, tortured earth, with
its wounds all bare, seemed to make a mute appeal to the surrounding bush to
come up and hide it, and, as if in answer to its appeal, the shrub and saplings
were beginning to close in from the foot of the range. The wilderness was reclaiming
its own again.
The two dark, sullen
hills that stood on each side were clothed from tip to hollow with dark scrub
and scraggy box-trees; but above the highest row of shafts on one side ran a
line of wattle-trees in full bloom.
The top of the western
hill was shaped somewhat like a saddle, and standing high above the eucalypti
on the point corresponding with the pommel were three tall pines. These lonely
trees, seen for many miles around, had caught the yellow rays of many a setting
sun long before the white man wandered over the ranges.
The predominant note of
the scene was a painful sense of listening, that never seemed to lose its
tension—a listening as though for the sounds of digger life, sounds that had
gone and left a void that was accentuated by the signs of a former presence.
The main army of diggers had long ago vanished to new rushes, leaving only its
stragglers and deserters behind. These were men who were too poor to drag
families about, men who were old and feeble, and men who had lost their faith
in fortune. They had dropped unnoticed out of the ranks; and remained to
scratch out a living among the abandoned claims.
Golden Gully had its
little community of fossickers who lived in a clearing called Spencer’s Flat on
one side and Pounding Flat on the other, but they lent no life to the scene;
they only haunted it. A stranger might have thought the field entirely deserted
until he came on a coat and a billy at the foot of saplings amongst the holes,
and heard, in the shallow ground underneath, the thud of a pick, which told of
some fossicker below rooting out what little wash remained.
One afternoon towards
Christmas, a windlass was erected over an old shaft of considerable depth at
the foot of the gully. A greenhide bucket attached to a rope on the windlass
was lying next morning near the mouth of the shaft, and beside it, on a
clear-swept patch, was a little mound of cool wet wash-dirt.
A clump of saplings near
at hand threw a shade over part of the mullock heap, and in this shade, seated
on an old coat, was a small boy of eleven or twelve years, writing on a slate.
He had fair hair, blue
eyes, and a thin old-fashioned face—a face that would scarcely alter as he grew
to manhood. His costume consisted of a pair of moleskin trousers, a cotton shirt,
and one suspender. He held the slate rigidly with a corner of its frame pressed
close against his ribs, whilst his head hung to one side, so close to the slate
that his straggling hair almost touched it. He was regarding his work fixedly
out of the corners of his eyes, whilst he painfully copied down the head line,
spelling it in a different way each time. In this laborious task he appeared to
be greatly assisted by a tongue that lolled out of the corner of his mouth and
made an occasional revolution round it, leaving a circle of temporarily clean
face. His small clay-covered toes also entered into the spirit of the thing,
and helped him not a little by their energetic wriggling. He paused
occasionally to draw the back of his small brown arm across his mouth.
Little Isley Mason, or,
as he was called, “His Father’s Mate,” had always been a favourite with the
diggers and fossickers from the days when he used to slip out first thing in
the morning and take a run across the frosty flat in his shirt. Long Bob
Sawkins would often tell how Isley came home one morning from his run in the
long, wet grass as naked as he was born, with the information that he had lost
his shirt.
Later on, when most of
the diggers had gone, and Isley’s mother was dead, he was to be seen about the
place with bare, sunbrowned arms and legs, a pick and shovel, and a gold dish
about two-thirds of his height in diameter, with which he used to go
“a-speckin’” and “fossickin’” amongst the old mullock heaps. Long Bob was
Isley’s special crony, and he would often go out of his way to lay the boy
outer bits o’ wash and likely spots, lamely excusing his long yarns with the
child by the explanation that it was “amusin’ to draw Isley out.”
Isley had been sitting
writing for some time when a deep voice called out from below:
“Isley!”
“Yes, father.”
“Send down the bucket.”
“Right.”
Isley put down his
slate, and going to the shaft dropped the bucket down as far as the slack rope
reached; then, placing one hand on the bole of the windlass and holding the
other against it underneath, he let it slip round between his palms until the
bucket reached bottom. A sound of shovelling was heard for a few moments, and
presently the voice cried, “Wind away, sonny.”
“Thet ain’t half
enough,” said the boy, peering down. “Don’t be frightened to pile it in,
father. I kin wind up a lot more’n thet.”
A little more scraping,
and the boy braced his feet well upon the little mound of clay which he had
raised under the handle of the windlass to make up for his deficiency in stature.
“Now then, Isley!”
Isley wound slowly but
sturdily, and soon the bucket of “wash” appeared above the surface; then he
took it in short lifts and deposited it with the rest of the wash-dirt.
“Isley!” called his
father again.
“Yes, father.”
“Have you done that
writing lesson yet?”
“Very near.”
“Then send down the
slate next time for some sums.”
“All right.”
The boy resumed his
seat, fixed the corner of the slate well into his ribs, humped his back, and
commenced another wavering line.
Tom Mason was known on
the place as a silent, hard worker. He was a man of about sixty, tall, and dark
bearded. There was nothing uncommon about his face, except, perhaps, that it
hardened, as the face of a man might harden who had suffered a long succession
of griefs and disappointments. He lived in little hut under a peppermint tree
at the far edge of Pounding Flat. His wife had died there about six years
before, and new rushes broke out and he was well able to go, he never left
Golden Gully.
Mason was kneeling in
front of the “face” digging away by the light of a tallow candle stuck in the
side. The floor of the drive was very wet, and his trousers were heavy and cold
with clay and water; but the old digger was used to this sort of thing. His
pick was not bringing out much to-day, however, for he seemed abstracted and
would occasionally pause in his work, while his thoughts wandered far away from
the narrow streak of wash-dirt in the “face.”
He was digging out
pictures from a past life. They were not pleasant ones, for his face was stony
and white in the dim glow of the candle.
Thud, thud, thud—the
blows became slower and more irregular as the fossicker’s mind wandered off
into the past. The sides of the drive seemed to vanish slowly away, and the
“face” retreated far out beyond a horizon that was hazy in the glow of the
southern ocean. He was standing on the deck of a ship and by his side stood a
brother. They were sailing southward to the Land of Promise that was shining
there in all its golden glory! The sails pressed forward in the bracing wind,
and the clipper ship raced along with its burden of the wildest dreamers ever
borne in a vessel’s hull! Up over long blue ocean ridges, down into long blue
ocean gullies; on to lands so new, and yet so old, where above the sunny glow
of the southern skies blazed the shining names of Ballarat! and Bendigo! The
deck seemed to lurch, and the fossicker fell forward against the face of the
drive. The shock recalled him, and he lifted his pick once more.
But the blows slacken
again as another vision rises before him. It is Ballarat now. He is working in
a shallow claim at Eureka, his brother by his side. The brother looks pale and
ill, for he has been up all night dancing and drinking. Out behind them is the
line of blue hills; in front is the famous Bakery Hill, and down to the left
Golden Point. Two mounted troopers are riding up over Specimen Hill. What do
they want?
They take the brother
away, handcuffed. Manslaughter last night. Cause—drink and jealousy.
The vision is gone
again. Thud, thud, goes the pick; it counts the years that follow—one, two,
three, four, up to twenty, and then it stops for the next scene—a selection on
the banks of a bright river in New South Wales. The little homestead is
surrounded by vines and fruit-trees. Many swarms of bees work under the shade
of the trees, and a crop of wheat is nearly ripe on the hillside.
A man and a boy are
engaged in clearing a paddock just below the homestead. They are father and
son; the son, a boy of about seventeen, is the image of his father.
Horses’ feet again! Here
comes Nemesis in mounted troopers’ uniform.
The mail was stuck up
last night about five miles away, and a refractory passenger shot. The son had
been out ‘possum shooting’ all night with some friends.
The troopers take the
son away handcuffed: “Robbery under arms.”
The father was taking
out a stump when the troopers came. His foot is still resting on the spade,
which is half driven home. He watches the troopers take the boy up to the
house, and then, driving the spade to its full depth, he turns up another sod.
The troopers reach the door of the homestead; but still he digs steadily, and
does not seem to hear his wife’s cry of despair. The troopers search the boy’s
room and bring out some clothing in two bundles; but still the father digs.
They have saddled up one of the farm horses and made the boy mount. The father
digs. They ride off along the ridge with the boy between them. The father never
lifts his eyes; the hole widens round the stump; he digs away till the brave little
wife comes and takes him gently by the arm. He half rouses himself and follows
her to the house like an obedient dog.
Trial and disgrace
follow, and then other misfortunes, pleuro among the cattle, drought, and
poverty.
Thud, thud, thud again!
But it is not the sound of the fossicker’s pick—it is the fall of sods on his
wife’s coffin.
It is a little bush
cemetery, and he stands stonily watching them fill up her grave. She died of a
broken heart and shame. “I can’t bear disgrace! I can’t bear disgrace!” she had
moaned all these six weary years—for the poor are often proud.
But he lives on, for it
takes a lot to break a man’s heart. He holds up his head and toils on for the
sake of a child that is left, and that child is—Isley.
And now the fossicker
seems to see a vision of the future. He seems to be standing somewhere, an old,
old man, with a younger one at his side; the younger one has Isley’s face.
Horses’ feet again! Ah, God! Nemesis once more in troopers’ uniform!
The fossicker falls on
his knees in the mud and clay at the bottom of the drive, and prays Heaven to
take his last child ere Nemesis comes for him.
Long Bob Sawkins had
been known on the diggings as “Bob the Devil.” His profile at least from one
side, certainly did recall that of the sarcastic Mephistopheles; but the other
side, like his true character, was by no means a devil’s. His physiognomy had
been much damaged, and one eye removed by the premature explosion of a blast in
some old Ballarat mine. The blind eye was covered with a green patch, which
gave a sardonic appearance to the remaining features.
He was a stupid, heavy,
good-natured Englishman. He stuttered a little, and had a peculiar habit of
wedging the monosyllable “why” into his conversation at times when it served no
other purpose than to fill up the pauses caused by his stuttering; but this by
no means assisted him in his speech, for he often stuttered over the “why”
itself.
The sun was getting low
down, and its yellow rays reached far up among the saplings of Golden Gully
when Bob appeared coming down by the path that ran under the western hill. He
was dressed in the usual costume-cotton shirt, moleskin trousers, faded hat and
waistcoat, and blucher boots. He carried a pick over his shoulder, the handle
of which was run through the heft of a short shovel that hung down behind, and
he had a big dish under his arm. He paused opposite the shaft with the
windlass, and hailed the boy in his usual form of salutation.
“Look, see here Isley!”
“What is it, Bob?”
“I seed a
young—why—magpie up in the scrub, and yer oughter be able to catch it.”
“Can’t leave the shaft;
father’s b’low.”
“How did yer father know
there was any—why—wash in the old shaft?”
“Seed old Corney in town
Saturday, ’n he said thur was enough to make it worth while bailin’ out. Bin
bailin’ all the mornin’.”
Bob came over, and
letting his tools down with a clatter he hitched up the knees of his moleskins
and sat down on one heel.
“What are yer—why—doin’
on the slate, Isley?” said he, taking out an old clay pipe and lighting it.
“Sums,” said Isley.
Bob puffed away at his
pipe a moment.
“’Tain’t no use!” he
said, sitting down on the clay and drawing his knees up. “Edication’s a
failyer.”
“Listen at ’im!”
exclaimed the boy. “D’yer mean ter say it ain’t no use learnin’ readin’ and
writin’ and sums?”
“Isley!”
“Right, father.”
The boy went to the
windlass and let the bucket down. Bob offered to help him wind up, but Isley,
proud of showing his strength to his friend, insisted on winding by himself.
“You’ll be—why—a strong
man some day, Isley,” said Bob, landing the bucket.
“Oh, I could wind up a
lot more’n father puts in. Look how I greased the handles! It works like butter
now,” and the boy sent the handles spinning round with a jerk to illustrate his
meaning.
“Why did they call yer
Isley for?” queried Bob, as they resumed their seats. “It ain’t yer real name,
is it?”
“No, my name’s Harry. A
digger useter say I was a isle in the ocean to father ’n mother, ’n then I was
nicknamed Isle, ’n then Isley.”
“You hed a—why—brother
once, didn’t yer?”
“Yes, but thet was afore
I was borned. He died, at least mother used ter say she didn’t know if he was
dead; but father says he’s dead as fur’s he’s concerned.”
“And your father hed a
brother, too. Did yer ever—why—hear of him?”
“Yes, I heard father
talkin’ about it wonst to mother. I think father’s brother got into some row in
a bar where a man was killed.”
“And was
yer—why—father—why—fond of him?”
“I heard father say that
he was wonst, but thet was all past.”
Bob smoked in silence
for a while, and seemed to look at some dark clouds that were drifting along
like a funeral out in the west. Presently he said half aloud something that
sounded like “All, all—why—past.”
“Eh?” said Isley.
“Oh, it’s—why,
why—nothin’,” answered Bob, rousing himself. “Is that a paper in yer father’s
coat-pocket, Isley?”
“Yes,” said the boy,
taking it out.
Bob took the paper and
stared hard at it for a moment or so.
“There’s something about
the new goldfields there,” said Bob, putting his finger on a tailor’s
advertisement. “I wish you’d—why—read it to me, Isley; I can’t see the small
print they uses nowadays.”
“No, thet’s not it,”
said the boy, taking the paper, “it’s something about—”
“Isley!”
“’Old on, Bob, father
wants me.”
The boy ran to the
shaft, rested his hands and forehead against the bole of the windlass, and
leant over to hear what his father was saying.
Without a moment’s
warning the treacherous bole slipped round; a small body bounded a couple of
times against the sides of the shaft and fell at Mason’s feet, where it lay
motionless!
“Mason!”
“Ay?”
“Put him in the bucket
and lash him to the rope with your belt!”
A few moments, and—
“Now, Bob!”
Bob’s trembling hands
would scarcely grasp the handle, but he managed to wind somehow.
Presently the form of
the child appeared, motionless and covered with clay and water. Mason was
climbing up by the steps in the side of the shaft.
Bob tenderly unlashed
the boy and laid him under the saplings on the grass; then he wiped some of the
clay and blood away from the child’s forehead, and dashed over him some muddy
water.
Presently Isley gave a
gasp and opened his eyes.
“Are yer—why—hurt much,
Isley?” asked Bob.
“Ba-back’s bruk, Bob!”
“Not so bad as that, old
man.”
“Where’s father?”
“Coming up.”
Silence awhile, and
then—
“Father! father! be
quick, father!”
Mason reached the
surface and came and knelt by the other side of the boy.
“I’ll, I’ll—why—run fur
some brandy,” said Bob.
“No use, Bob,” said
Isley. “I’m all bruk up.”
“Don’t yer feel better,
sonny?”
“No—I’m—goin’ to—die,
Bob.”
“Don’t say it, Isley,”
groaned Bob.
A short silence, and
then the boy’s body suddenly twisted with pain. But it was soon over. He lay
still awhile, and then said quietly:
“Good-bye, Bob!”
Bob made a vain attempt
to speak. “Isley!” he said,”—-”
The child turned and
stretched out his hands to the silent, stony-faced man on the other side.
“Father—father, I’m
goin’!”
A shuddering groan broke
from Mason’s lips, and then all was quiet.
Bob had taken off his
hat to wipe his, forehead, and his face, in spite of its disfigurement, was
strangely like the face of the stone-like man opposite.
For a moment they looked
at one another across the body of the child, and then Bob said quietly:
“He never knowed.”
“What does it matter?”
said Mason gruffly; and, taking up the dead child, he walked towards the hut.
It was a very sad little
group that gathered outside Mason’s but next morning. Martin’s wife had been
there all the morning cleaning up and doing what she could. One of the women
had torn up her husband’s only white shirt for a shroud, and they had made the
little body look clean and even beautiful in the wretched little hut.
One after another the
fossickers took off their hats and entered, stooping through the low door.
Mason sat silently at the foot of the bunk with his head supported by his hand,
and watched the men with a strange, abstracted air.
Bob had ransacked the
camp in search of some boards for a coffin.
“It will be the last
I’ll be able to—why—do for him,” he said.
At last he came to Mrs
Martin in despair. That lady took him into the dining-room, and pointed to a
large pine table, of which she was very proud.
“Knock that table to
pieces,” she said.
Taking off the few
things that were lying on it, Bob turned it over and began to knock the top
off.
When he had finished the
coffin one of the fossicker’s wives said it looked too bare, and she ripped up
her black riding-skirt, and made Bob tack the cloth over the coffin.
There was only one
vehicle available in the place, and that was Martin’s old dray; so about two
o’clock Pat Martin attached his old horse Dublin to the shafts with sundry bits
of harness and plenty of old rope, and dragged Dublin, dray and all, across to
Mason’s hut.
The little coffin was
carried out, and two gin-cases were placed by its side in the dray to serve as
seats for Mrs Martin and Mrs Grimshaw, who mounted in tearful silence.
Pat Martin felt for his
pipe, but remembered himself and mounted on the shaft. Mason fastened up the
door of the hut with a padlock. A couple of blows on one of his sharp points
roused Dublin from his reverie. With a lurch to the right and another to the
left he started, and presently the little funeral disappeared down the road
that led to the “town” and its cemetery.
About six months
afterwards Bob Sawkins went on a short journey, and returned with a tall,
bearded young man. He and Bob arrived after dark, and went straight to Mason’s
hut. There was a light inside, but when Bob knocked there was no answer.
“Go in; don’t be
afraid,’” he said to his companion.
The stranger pushed open
the creaking door, and stood bareheaded just inside the doorway.
A billy was boiling
unheeded on the fire. Mason sat at the table with his face buried in his arms.
“Father!”
There was no answer, but
the flickering of the firelight made the stranger think he could detect an
impatient shrug in Mason’s shoulders.
For a moment the
stranger paused irresolute, and then stepping up to the table he laid his hand
on Mason’s arm, and said gently:
“Father! Do you want
another mate?”
But the sleeper did
not—at least, not in this world.
AN ECHO FROM THE OLD BARK SCHOOL
It was the first Monday
after the holidays. The children had taken their seats in the Old Bark School,
and the master called out the roll as usual:
“Arvie Aspinall.”...
“’Es, sir.”
“David Cooper.”... “Yes,
sir.”
“John Heegard.”...
“Yezzer.”
“Joseph Swallow.”...
“Yesser.”
“James Bullock.”...
“Present.”
“Frederick Swallow.”...
“Y’sir.”
“James Nowlett.”... .
(Chorus of “Absent.”)
“William Atkins.”...
(Chorus of “Absent.”)
“Daniel Lyons.”...
“Perresent, sor-r-r.”
Dan was a young
immigrant, just out from the sod, and rolled his “r’s” like a cock-dove. His
brogue was rich enough to make an Irishman laugh.
Bill was “wagging it.”
His own especial chum was of the opinion that Bill was sick. The master’s opinion
did not coincide, so he penned a note to William’s parents, to be delivered by
the model boy of the school.
“Bertha Lambert.”...
“Yes, ’air.”
“May Carey.”... “Pesin’,
sair.”
“Rose Cooper.”... “Yes,
sir.”
“Janet Wild.”...
“Y-y-yes, s-sir.”
“Mary Wild.”...
A solemn hush fell upon
the school, and presently Janet Wild threw her arms out on the desk before her,
let her face fall on them, and sobbed heart-brokenly. The master saw his
mistake too late; he gave his head a little half-affirmative, half-negative
movement, in that pathetic old way of his; rested his head on one hand, gazed
sadly at the name, and sighed.
But the galoot of the
school spoilt the pathos of it all, for, during the awed silence which followed
the calling of the girl’s name, he suddenly brightened up—the first time he was
ever observed to do so during school hours—and said, briskly and cheerfully
“Dead—sir!”
He hadn’t been able to
answer a question correctly for several days.
“Children,” said the
master gravely and sadly, “children, this is the first time I ever had to put
‘D’ to the name of one of my scholars. Poor Mary! she was one of my first
pupils—came the first morning the school was opened. Children, I want you to be
a little quieter to-day during play-hour, out of respect for the name of your
dead schoolmate whom it has pleased the Almighty to take in her youth.”
“Please, sir,” asked the
galoot, evidently encouraged by his fancied success, “please, sir, what does
‘D’ stand for?”
“Damn you for a hass!”
snarled Jim Bullock between his teeth, giving the galoot a vicious dig in the
side with his elbow.
THE SHEARING OF THE COOK’S DOG
The dog was a little
conservative mongrel poodle, with long dirty white hair all over him—longest
and most over his eyes, which glistened through it like black beads. Also he
seemed to have a bad liver. He always looked as if he was suffering from a
sense of injury, past or to come. It did come. He used to follow the shearers
up to the shed after breakfast every morning, but he couldn’t have done this
for love—there was none lost between him and the men. He wasn’t an affectionate
dog; it wasn’t his style. He would sit close against the shed for an hour or
two, and hump himself, and sulk, and look sick, and snarl whenever the
“Sheep-Ho” dog passed, or a man took notice of him. Then he’d go home. What he
wanted at the shed at all was only known to himself; no one asked him to come.
Perhaps he came to collect evidence against us. The cook called him “my darg,”
and the men called the cook “Curry and Rice,” with “old” before it mostly.
Rice was a little,
dumpy, fat man, with a round, smooth, good-humoured face, a bald head, feet
wide apart, and a big blue cotton apron. He had been a ship’s cook. He didn’t
look so much out of place in the hut as the hut did round him. To a man with a
vivid imagination, if he regarded the cook dreamily for a while, the floor
might seem to roll gently like the deck of a ship, and mast, rigging, and cuddy
rise mistily in the background. Curry might have dreamed of the cook’s galley
at times, but he never mentioned it. He ought to have been at sea, or
comfortably dead and stowed away under ground, instead of cooking for a mob of
unredeemed rouseabouts in an uncivilized shed in the scrub, six hundred miles
from the ocean.
They chyacked the cook
occasionally, and grumbled—or pretended to grumble—about their tucker, and then
he’d make a roughly pathetic speech, with many references to his age, and the
hardness of his work, and the smallness of his wages, and the inconsiderateness
of the men. Then the joker of the shed would sympathize with the cook with his
tongue and one side of his face—and joke with the other.
One day in the shed,
during smoke-ho the devil whispered to a shearer named Geordie that it would be
a lark to shear the cook’s dog—the Evil One having previously arranged that the
dog should be there, sitting close to Geordie’s pen, and that the shearer
should have a fine lamb comb on his machine. The idea was communicated through
Geordie to his mates, and met with entire and general approval; and for five or
ten minutes the air was kept alive by shouting and laughter of the men, and the
protestations of the dog. When the shearer touched skin, he yelled “Tar!” and
when he finished he shouted “Wool away!” at the top of his voice, and his mates
echoed him with a will. A picker-up gathered the fleece with a great show of
labour and care, and tabled it, to the well-ventilated disgust of old Scotty,
the wool-roller. When they let the dog go he struck for home—a clean-shaven
poodle, except for a ferocious moustache and a tuft at the end of his tail.
The cook’s assistant
said that he’d have given a five-pound note for a portrait of Curry-and-Rice
when that poodle came back from the shed. The cook was naturally very
indignant; he was surprised at first—then he got mad. He had the whole
afternoon to get worked up in, and at tea-time he went for the men properly.
“Wotter yer growlin’
about?” asked one. “Wot’s the matter with yer, anyway?”
“I don’t know nothing
about yer dog!” protested a rouseabout; “wotyer gettin’ on to me for?”
“Wotter they bin doin’
to the cook now?” inquired a ring leader innocently, as he sprawled into his
place at the table. “Can’t yer let Curry alone? Wot d’yer want to be chyackin’
him for? Give it a rest.”
“Well, look here, chaps,”
observed Geordie, in a determined tone, “I call it a shame, that’s what I call
it. Why couldn’t you leave an old man’s dog alone? It was a mean, dirty trick
to do, and I suppose you thought it funny. You ought to be ashamed of
yourselves, the whole lot of you, for a drafted mob of crawlers. If I’d been
there it wouldn’t have been done; and I wouldn’t blame Curry if he was to
poison the whole convicted push.”
General lowering of
faces and pulling of hats down over eyes, and great working of knives and forks;
also sounds like men trying not to laugh.
“Why couldn’t you play a
trick on another man’s darg?” said Curry. “It’s no use tellin’ me. I can see it
all as plain as if I was on the board—all of you runnin’ an’ shoutin’ an’
cheerin’ an’ laughin’, and all over shearin’ and ill-usin’ a poor little darg!
Why couldn’t you play a trick on another man’s darg?... It doesn’t matter
much—I’m nearly done cookie’ here now.... Only that I’ve got a family to think
of I wouldn’t ’a’ stayed so long. I’ve got to be up at five every mornin’, an’
don’t get to bed till ten at night, cookin’ an’ bakin’ an’ cleanin’ for you an’
waitin’ on you. First one lot in from the wool-wash, an’ then one lot in from
the shed, an’ another lot in, an’ at all hours an’ times, an’ all wantin’ their
meals kept hot, an’ then they ain’t satisfied. And now you must go an’ play a
dirty trick on my darg! Why couldn’t you have a lark with some other man’s
darg!”
Geordie bowed his head
and ate as though he had a cud, like a cow, and could chew at leisure. He
seemed ashamed, as indeed we all were—secretly. Poor old Curry’s oft-repeated
appeal, “Why couldn’t you play a trick with another man’s dog?” seemed to have
something pathetic about it. The men didn’t notice that it lacked philanthropy
and logic, and probably the cook didn’t notice it either, else he wouldn’t have
harped on it. Geordie lowered his face, and just then, as luck or the devil
would have it, he caught sight of the dog. Then he exploded.
The cook usually forgot
all about it in an hour, and then, if you asked him what the chaps had been
doing, he’d say, “Oh, nothing! nothing! Only their larks!” But this time he
didn’t; he was narked for three days, and the chaps marvelled much and were
sorry, and treated him with great respect and consideration. They hadn’t
thought he’d take it so hard—the dog shearing business—else they wouldn’t have
done it. They were a little puzzled too, and getting a trifle angry, and would
shortly be prepared to take the place of the injured party, and make things unpleasant
for the cook. However, he brightened up towards the end of the week, and then
it all came out.
“I wouldn’t ’a’ minded
so much,” he said, standing by the table with a dipper in one hand, a bucket in
the other, and a smile on his face. “I wouldn’t ’a’ minded so much only they’ll
think me a flash man in Bourke with that theer darg trimmed up like that!”
At least two hundred
poor beggars were counted sleeping out on the pavements of the main streets of
Sydney the other night—grotesque bundles of rags lying under the verandas of
the old Fruit Markets and York Street shops, with their heads to the wall and
their feet to the gutter. It was raining and cold that night, and the
unemployed had been driven in from Hyde Park and the bleak Domain—from dripping
trees, damp seats, and drenched grass—from the rain, and cold, and the wind.
Some had sheets of old newspapers to cover them-and some hadn’t. Two were
mates, and they divided a Herald between them. One had a sheet
of brown paper, and another (lucky man!) had a bag—the only bag there. They all
shrank as far into their rags as possible—and tried to sleep. The rats seemed
to take them for rubbish, too, and only scampered away when one of the outcasts
moved uneasily, or coughed, or groaned—or when a policeman came along.
One or two rose
occasionally and rooted in the dust-boxes on the pavement outside the shops—but
they didn’t seem to get anything. They were feeling “peckish,” no doubt, and
wanted to see if they could get something to eat before the corporation carts
came along. So did the rats.
Some men can’t sleep
very well on an empty stomach—at least, not at first; but it mostly comes with
practice. They often sleep for ever in London. Not in Sydney as yet—so we say.
Now and then one of our
outcasts would stretch his cramped limbs to ease them—but the cold soon made
him huddle again. The pavement must have been hard on the men’s “points,” too;
they couldn’t dig holes nor make soft places for their hips, as you can in camp
out back. And then, again, the stones had nasty edges and awkward slopes, for
the pavements were very uneven.
The Law came along now
and then, and had a careless glance at the unemployed in bed. They didn’t look
like sleeping beauties. The Law appeared to regard them as so much rubbish that
ought not to have been placed there, and for the presence of which somebody
ought to be prosecuted by the Inspector of Nuisances. At least, that was the
expression the policeman had on his face.
And so Australian
workmen lay at two o’clock in the morning in the streets of Sydney, and tried
to get a little sleep before the traffic came along and took their bed.
The idea of sleeping out
might be nothing to bushmen—not even an idea; but “dossing out” in the city and
“camping” in the bush are two very different things. In the bush you can light
a fire, boil your billy, and make some tea—if you have any; also fry a chop
(there are no sheep running round in the city). You can have a clean meal, take
off your shirt and wash it, and wash yourself—if there’s water enough—and feel
fresh and clean. You can whistle and sing by the camp-fire, and make poetry,
and breathe fresh air, and watch the everlasting stars that keep the mateless
traveller from going mad as he lies in his lonely camp on the plains. Your
privacy is even more perfect than if you had a suite of rooms at the Australia;
you are at the mercy of no policeman; there’s no one to watch you but God—and
He won’t move you on. God watches the “dossers-out,” too, in the city, but He
doesn’t keep them from being moved on or run in.
With the city unemployed
the case is entirely different. The city outcast cannot light a fire and boil a
billy—even if he has one—he’d be run in at once for attempting to commit arson,
or create a riot, or on suspicion of being a person of unsound mind. If he took
off his shirt to wash it, or went in for a swim, he’d be had up for indecently
exposing his bones—and perhaps he’d get flogged. He cannot whistle or sing on
his pavement bed at night, for, if he did, he’d be violently arrested by two
great policemen for riotous conduct. He doesn’t see many stars, and he’s
generally too hungry to make poetry. He only sleeps on the pavement on
sufferance, and when the policeman finds the small hours hang heavily on him,
he can root up the unemployed with his big foot and move him on—or arrest him
for being around with the intention to commit a felony; and, when the wretched
“dosser” rises in the morning, he cannot shoulder his swag and take the
track—he must cadge a breakfast at some back gate or restaurant, and then sit
in the park or walk round and round, the same old hopeless round, all day.
There’s no prison like the city for a poor man.
Nearly every man the
traveller meets in the bush is about as dirty and ragged as himself, and just
about as hard up; but in the city nearly every man the poor unemployed meets is
a dude, or at least, well dressed, and the unemployed feels dirty
and mean and degraded by the contrast—and despised.
And he can’t help
feeling like a criminal. It may be imagination, but every policeman seems to
regard him with suspicion, and this is terrible to a sensitive man.
We once had the key of
the street for a night. We don’t know how much tobacco we smoked, how many
seats we sat on, or how many miles we walked before morning. But we do know
that we felt like a felon, and that every policeman seemed to regard us with a
suspicious eye; and at last we began to squint furtively at every trap we met,
which, perhaps, made him more suspicious, till finally we felt bad enough to be
run in and to get six months’ hard.
Three winters ago a man,
whose name doesn’t matter, had a small office near Elizabeth Street, Sydney. He
was an hotel broker, debt collector, commission agent, canvasser, and so on, in
a small way—a very small way—but his heart was big. He had a partner. They
batched in the office, and did their cooking over a gas lamp. Now, every day
the man-whose-name-doesn’t-matter would carefully collect the scraps of food,
add a slice or two of bread and butter, wrap it all up in a piece of newspaper,
and, after dark, step out and leave the parcel on a ledge of the stonework
outside the building in the street. Every morning it would be gone. A shadow
came along in the night and took it. This went on for many months, till at last
one night the man-whose-name-doesn’t-matter forgot to put the parcel out, and
didn’t think of it till he was in bed. It worried him, so that at last he had
to get up and put the scraps outside. It was midnight. He felt curious to see
the shadow, so he waited until it came along. It wasn’t his long-lost brother,
but it was an old mate of his.
Let us finish with a
sketch:
The scene was Circular
Quay, outside the Messageries sheds. The usual number of bundles of
misery—covered more or less with dirty sheets of newspaper—lay along the wall
under the ghastly glare of the electric light. Time—shortly after midnight.
From among the bundles an old man sat up. He cautiously drew off his pants, and
then stood close to the wall, in his shirt, tenderly examining the seat of the
trousers. Presently he shook them out, folded them with great care, wrapped
them in a scrap of newspaper, and laid them down where his head was to be. He
had thin, hairy legs and a long grey beard. From a bundle of rags he extracted
another pair of pants, which were all patches and tatters, and into which he
engineered his way with great caution. Then he sat down, arranged the paper
over his knees, laid his old ragged grey head back on his precious
Sunday-go-meetings-and slept.
We crossed Cook’s
Straits from Wellington in one of those rusty little iron tanks that go up and
down and across there for twenty or thirty years and never get wrecked—for no
other reason, apparently, than that they have every possible excuse to go
ashore or go down on those stormy coasts. The age, construction, or condition
of these boats, and the south-easters, and the construction of the coastline,
are all decidedly in favour of their going down; the fares are high and the
accommodation is small and dirty. It is always the same where there is no
competition.
A year or two ago, when
a company was running boats between Australia and New Zealand without
competition, the steerage fare was three pound direct single, and two pound ten
shillings between Auckland and Wellington. The potatoes were black and green
and soggy, the beef like bits scraped off the inside of a hide which had lain
out for a day or so, the cabbage was cabbage leaves, the tea muddy. The whole
business took away our appetite regularly three times a day, and there wasn’t
enough to go round, even if it had been good—enough tucker, we mean; there was
enough appetite to go round three or four times, but it was driven away by
disgust until after meals. If we had not, under cover of darkness, broached a
deck cargo of oranges, lemons, and pineapples, and thereby run the risk of
being run in on arrival, there would have been starvation, disease, and death
on that boat before the end—perhaps mutiny.
You can go across now
for one pound, and get something to eat on the road; but the travelling public
will go on patronizing the latest reducer of fares until the poorer company
gets starved out and fares go up again—then the travelling public will have to
pay three or four times as much as they do now, and go hungry on the voyage;
all of which ought to go to prove that the travelling public is as big a fool
as the general public.
We can’t help thinking
that the captains and crews of our primitive little coastal steamers take the
chances so often that they in time get used to it, and, being used to it, have
no longer any misgivings or anxiety in rough weather concerning a watery grave,
but feel as perfectly safe as if they were in church with their wives or
sisters—only more comfortable—and go on feeling so until the worn-out machinery
breaks down and lets the old tub run ashore, or knocks a hole in her side, or
the side itself rusts through at last and lets the water in, or the last straw
in the shape of an extra ton of brine tumbles on board, and the John
Smith (Newcastle), goes down with a swoosh before the cook has time to
leave off peeling his potatoes and take to prayer.
These cheerful—and,
maybe, unjust—reflections are perhaps in consequence of our having lost half a
sovereign to start with. We arrived at the booking-office with two minutes to
spare, two sticks of Juno tobacco, a spare wooden pipe—in case we lost the
other—a letter to a friend’s friend down south, a pound note (Bank of New
Zealand), and two half-crowns, with which to try our fortunes in the South
Island. We also had a few things in a portmanteau and two blankets in a
three-bushel bag, but they didn’t amount to much. The clerk put down the ticket
with the half-sovereign on top of it, and we wrapped the latter in the former
and ran for the wharf. On the way we snatched the ticket out to see the name of
the boat we were going by, in order to find it, and it was then, we suppose,
that the semi-quid got lost.
Did you ever lose a
sovereign or a half-sovereign under similar circumstances? You think of it
casually and feel for it carelessly at first, to be sure that it’s there all
right; then, after going through your pockets three or four times with rapidly
growing uneasiness, you lose your head a little and dredge for that coin
hurriedly and with painful anxiety. Then you force yourself to be calm, and
proceed to search yourself systematically, in a methodical manner. At this
stage, if you have time, it’s a good plan to sit down and think out when and
where you last had that half-sovereign, and where you have been since, and
which way you came from there, and what you took out of your pocket, and where,
and whether you might have given it in mistake for sixpence at that pub where
you rushed in to have a beer—and then you calculate the chances against getting
it back again. The last of these reflections is apt to be painful, and the
painfulness is complicated and increased when there happen to have been several
pubs and a like number of hurried farewell beers in the recent past.
And for months after
that you cannot get rid of the idea that that half-sov. might be about your
clothes somewhere. It haunts you. You turn your pockets out, and feel the
lining of your coat and vest inch by inch, and examine your letter
papers—everything you happen to have had in your pocket that day—over and over
again, and by and by you peer in envelopes and unfold papers that you didn’t
have in your pocket at all, but might have had. And when the novelty of the
first search has worn off, and the fit takes you, you make another search. Even
after many months have passed away, some day—or night—when you are hard up for
tobacco and a drink, you suddenly think of that late lamented half-sov., and
are moved by adverse circumstances to look through your old clothes in a sort
of forlorn hope, or to give good luck a sort of chance to surprise you—the only
chance that you can give it.
By the way,
seven-and-six of that half-quid should have gone to the landlord of the hotel
where we stayed last, and somehow, in spite of this enlightened age, the loss
of it seemed a judgment; and seeing that the boat was old and primitive, and
there was every sign of a three days’ sou’-easter, we sincerely hoped that
judgment was complete—that supreme wrath had been appeased by the fine of ten
bob without adding any Jonah business to it.
This reminds us that we
once found a lost half-sovereign in the bowl of a spare pipe six months after
it was lost. We wish it had stayed there and turned up to-night. But, although
when you are in great danger—say, adrift in an open boat—tales of providential
escapes and rescues may interest and comfort you, you can’t get any comfort out
of anecdotes concerning the turning up of lost quids when you have just lost
one yourself. All you want is to find it.
It bothers you even not
to be able to account for a bob. You always like to know that you have had
something for your money, if only a long beer. You would sooner know that you
fooled your money away on a spree, and made yourself sick than lost it out of
an extra hole in your pocket, and kept well.
We left Wellington with
a feeling of pained regret, a fellow-wanderer by our side telling us how he had
once lost “fi-pun-note”—and about two-thirds of the city unemployed on the
wharf looking for that half-sovereign. Well, we hope that some poor devil found
it; although, to tell the truth, we would then have by far preferred to have
found it ourselves.
A sailor said that
the Moa was a good sea-boat, and, although she was small and
old, he was never afraid of her. He’d sooner travel in her
than in some of those big cheap ocean liners with more sand in them than iron
or steel—You, know the rest. Further on, in a conversation concerning the age
of these coasters, he said that they’d last fully thirty years if well painted
and looked after. He said that this one was seldom painted, and never painted
properly; and then, seemingly in direct contradiction to his previously
expressed confidence in the safety and seaworthiness of the Moa, he
said that he could poke a stick through her anywhere. We asked him not to do
it.
It came on to splash,
and we went below to reflect, and search once more for that half-sovereign. The
cabin was small and close, and dimly lighted, and evil smelling, and shaped
like the butt end of a coffin. It might not have smelt so bad if we hadn’t lost
that half-sovereign. There was a party of those gipsy-like Assyrians—two
families apparently—the women and children lying very sick about the lower
bunks; and a big, good-humoured-looking young Maori propped between the end of
the table and the wall, playing a concertina. The sick people were too sick,
and the concertina seemed too much in sympathy with them, and the lost
half-quid haunted us more than ever down there; so we started to climb out.
The first thing that struck
us was the jagged top edge of that iron hood-like arrangement over the gangway.
The top half only of the scuttle was open. There was nothing to be seen except
a fog of spray and a Newfoundland dog sea-sick under the lee of something. The
next thing that struck us was a tub of salt water, which came like a cannon
ball and broke against the hood affair, and spattered on deck like a crockery
shop. We climbed down again backwards, and sat on the floor with emphasis, in
consequence of stepping down a last step that wasn’t there, and cracked the
back of our heads against the edge of the table. The Maori helped us up, and we
had a drink with him at the expense of one of the half-casers mentioned in the
beginning of this sketch. Then the Maori shouted, then we, then the Maori
again, then we again; and then we thought, “Dash it, what’s a half-sovereign?
We’ll fall on our feet all right.”
We went up Queen
Charlotte’s Sound, a long crooked arm of the sea between big, rugged,
black-looking hills. There was a sort of lighthouse down near the entrance, and
they said an old Maori woman kept it. There were some whitish things on the
sides of the hills, which we at first took for cattle, and then for goats. They
were sheep. Someone said that that country was only fit to carry sheep. It must
have been bad, then, judging from some of the country in Australia which is
only fit to carry sheep. Country that wouldn’t carry goats would carry sheep,
we think. Sheep are about the hardiest animals on the face of this planet—barring
crocodiles.
You may rip a sheep open
whilst watching for the boss’s boots or yarning to a pen-mate, and then when
you have stuffed the works back into the animal, and put a stitch in the slit,
and poked it somewhere with a tar-stick (it doesn’t matter much where) the
jumbuck will be all right and just as lively as ever, and turn up next shearing
without the ghost of a scratch on its skin.
We reached Picton, a
small collection of twinkling lights in a dark pocket, apparently at the top of
a sound. We climbed up on to the wharf, got through between two railway trucks,
and asked a policeman where we were, and where the telegraph office was. There
were several pretty girls in the office, laughing and chyacking the counter
clerks, which jarred upon the feelings of this poor orphan wanderer in strange
lands. We gloomily took a telegram form, and wired to a friend in North Island,
using the following words: “Wire quid; stumped.”
Then we crossed the
street to a pub and asked for a roof and they told us to go up to No. 8. We
went up, struck a match, lit the candle, put our bag in a corner, cleared the
looking-glass off the toilet table, got some paper and a pencil out of our
portmanteau, and sat down and wrote this sketch.
The candle is going out.
The two travellers had
yarned late in their camp, and the moon was getting low down through the mulga.
Mitchell’s mate had just finished a rather racy yarn, but it seemed to fall
flat on Mitchell—he was in a sentimental mood. He smoked a while, and thought,
and then said:
“Ah! there was one
little girl that I was properly struck on. She came to our place on a visit to
my sister. I think she was the best little girl that ever lived, and about the
prettiest. She was just eighteen, and didn’t come up to my shoulder; the
biggest blue eyes you ever saw, and she had hair that reached down to her
knees, and so thick you couldn’t span it with your two hands—brown and
glossy—and her skin with like lilies and roses. Of course, I never thought
she’d look at a rough, ugly, ignorant brute like me, and I used to keep out of
her way and act a little stiff towards her; I didn’t want the others to think I
was gone on her, because I knew they’d laugh at me, and maybe she’d laugh at me
more than all. She would come and talk to me, and sit near me at table; but I
thought that that was on account of her good nature, and she pitied me because
I was such a rough, awkward chap. I was gone on that girl, and no joking; and I
felt quite proud to think she was a countrywoman of mine. But I wouldn’t let
her know that, for I felt sure she’d only laugh.
“Well, things went on
till I got the offer of two or three years’ work on a station up near the
border, and I had to go, for I was hard up; besides, I wanted to get away.
Stopping round where she was only made me miserable.
“The night I left they
were all down at the station to see me off—including the girl I was gone on.
When the train was ready to start she was standing away by herself on the dark
end of the platform, and my sister kept nudging me and winking, and fooling
about, but I didn’t know what she was driving at. At last she said:
“‘Go and speak to her,
you noodle; go and say good-bye to Edie.’
“So I went up to where
she was, and, when the others turned their backs—
“‘Well, good-bye, Miss
Brown,’ I said, holding out my hand; ‘I don’t suppose I’ll ever see you again,
for Lord knows when I’ll be back. Thank you for coming to see me off.’
“Just then she turned
her face to the light, and I saw she was crying. She was trembling all over.
Suddenly she said, ‘Jack! Jack!’ just like that, and held up her arms like
this.”
Mitchell was speaking in
a tone of voice that didn’t belong to him, and his mate looked up. Mitchell’s
face was solemn, and his eyes were fixed on the fire.
“I suppose you gave her
a good hug then, and a kiss?” asked the mate.
“I s’pose so,” snapped
Mitchell. “There is some things a man doesn’t want to joke about.... Well, I
think we’ll shove on one of the billies, and have a drink of tea before we turn
in.”
“I suppose,” said
Mitchell’s mate, as they drank their tea, “I suppose you’ll go back and marry
her some day?”
“Some day! That’s it; it
looks like it, doesn’t it? We all say, ‘Some day.’ I used to say it ten years
ago, and look at me now. I’ve been knocking round for five years, and the last
two years constant on the track, and no show of getting off it unless I go for
good, and what have I got for it? I look like going home and getting married,
without a penny in my pocket or a rag to my back scarcely, and no show of
getting them. I swore I’d never go back home without a cheque, and, what’s
more, I never will; but the cheque days are past. Look at that boot! If we were
down among the settled districts we’d be called tramps and beggars; and what’s
the difference? I’ve been a fool, I know, but I’ve paid for it; and now there’s
nothing for it but to tramp, tramp, tramp for your tucker, and keep tramping
till you get old and careless and dirty, and older, and more careless and
dirtier, and you get used to the dust and sand, and heat, and flies, and
mosquitoes, just as a bullock does, and lose ambition and hope, and get
contented with this animal life, like a dog, and till your swag seems part of
yourself, and you’d be lost and uneasy and light-shouldered without it, and you
don’t care a damn if you’ll ever get work again, or live like a Christian; and
you go on like this till the spirit of a bullock takes the place of the heart
of a man. Who cares? If we hadn’t found the track yesterday we might have lain
and rotted in that lignum, and no one been any the wiser—or sorrier—who knows?
Somebody might have found us in the end, but it mightn’t have been worth his
while to go out of his way and report us. Damn the world, say I!”
He smoked for a while in
savage silence; then he knocked the ashes out of his pipe, felt for his tobacco
with a sigh, and said:
“Well, I am a bit out of
sorts to-night. I’ve been thinking.... I think we’d best turn in, old man;
we’ve got a long, dry stretch before us to-morrow.”
They rolled out their
swags on the sand, lay down, and wrapped themselves in their blankets. Mitchell
covered his face with a piece of calico, because the moonlight and wind kept
him awake.
We caught up with an old
swagman crossing the plain, and tramped along with him till we came to good
shade to have a smoke in. We had got yarning about men getting lost in the bush
or going away and being reported dead.
“Yes,” said the old
‘whaler’, as he dropped his swag in the shade, sat down on it, and felt for his
smoking tackle, “there’s scarcely an old bushman alive—or dead, for the matter
of that—who hasn’t been dead a few times in his life—or reported dead, which
amounts to the same thing for a while. In my time there was as many live men in
the bush who was supposed to be dead as there was dead men who was supposed to
be alive—though it’s the other way about now—what with so many jackaroos
tramping about out back and getting lost in the dry country that they don’t
know anything about, and dying within a few yards of water sometimes. But even
now, whenever I hear that an old bush mate of mine is dead, I don’t fret about
it or put a black band round my hat, because I know he’ll be pretty sure to
turn up sometimes, pretty bad with the booze, and want to borrow half a crown.
“I’ve been dead a few
times myself, and found out afterwards that my friends was so sorry about it,
and that I was such a good sort of a chap after all, when I was dead that—that
I was sorry I didn’t stop dead. You see, I was one of them chaps that’s better
treated by their friends and better thought of when—when they’re dead.
“Ah, well! Never
mind.... Talking of killing bushmen before their time reminds me of some cases
I knew. They mostly happened among the western spurs of the ranges. There was a
bullock-driver named Billy Nowlett. He had a small selection, where he kept his
family, and used to carry from the railway terminus to the stations up-country.
One time he went up with a load and was not heard of for such a long time that
his missus got mighty uneasy; and then she got a letter from a publican up
Coonamble way to say that Billy was dead. Someone wrote, for the widow, to ask
about the wagon and the bullocks, but the shanty-keeper wrote that Billy had
drunk them before he died, and that he’d also to say that he’d drunk the money
he got for the carrying; and the publican enclosed a five-pound note for the
widow—which was considered very kind of him.
“Well, the widow
struggled along and managed without her husband just the same as she had always
struggled along and managed with him—a little better, perhaps. An old digger
used to drop in of evenings and sit by the widow’s fire, and yarn, and
sympathize, and smoke, and think; and just as he began to yarn a lot less, and
smoke and think a lot more, Billy Nowlett himself turned up with a load of
rations for a sheep station. He’d been down by the other road, and the letter
he’d wrote to his missus had gone astray. Billy wasn’t surprised to hear that
he was dead—he’d been killed before—but he was surprised about the five quid.
“You see, it must have
been another bullock-driver that died. There was an old shanty-keeper up
Coonamble way, so Billy said, that used to always mistake him for another
bullocky and mistake the other bullocky for him—couldn’t tell the one from the
other no way—and he used to have bills against Billy that the other
bullock-driver’d run up, and bills against the other that Billy’d run up, and
generally got things mixed up in various ways, till Billy wished that one of
’em was dead. And the funniest part of the business was that Billy wasn’t no
more like the other man than chalk is like cheese. You’ll often drop across
some colour-blind old codger that can’t tell the difference between two people
that ain’t got a bit of likeness between ’em.
“Then there was young
Joe Swallow. He was found dead under a burned-down tree in Dead Man’s
Gully—‘dead past all recognition,’ they said—and he was buried there, and by
and by his ghost began to haunt the gully: at least, all the schoolkids seen
it, and there was scarcely a grown-up person who didn’t know another person
who’d seen the ghost—and the other person was always a sober chap that wouldn’t
bother about telling a lie. But just as the ghost was beginning to settle down
to work in the gully, Joe himself turned up, and then the folks began to reckon
that it was another man was killed there, and that the ghost belonged to the
other man; and some of them began to recollect that they’d thought all along
that the ghost wasn’t Joe’s ghost—even when they thought that it was really Joe
that was killed there.
“Then, again, there was
the case of Brummy Usen—Hughison I think they spelled it—the bushranger; he was
shot by old Mr S—-, of E—-, while trying to stick the old gentleman up. There’s
something about it in a book called ‘Robbery Under Arms’, though the names is
all altered—and some other time I’ll tell you all about the digging of the body
up for the inquest and burying it again. This Brummy used to work for a
publican in a sawmill that the publican had; and this publican and his daughter
identified the body by a woman holding up a branch tattooed on the right arm.
I’ll tell you all about that another time. This girl remembered how she used to
watch this tattooed woman going up and down on Brummy’s arm when he was working
in the saw-pit—going up and down and up and down, like this, while Brummy was
working his end of the saw. So the bushranger was inquested and
justifiable-homicided as Brummy Usen, and buried again in his dust and blood
stains and monkey-jacket.
“All the same it wasn’t him;
for the real Brummy turned up later on; but he couldn’t make the people believe
he wasn’t dead. They was mostly English country people from Kent and Yorkshire
and those places; and the most self-opinionated and obstinate people that ever
lived when they got a thing into their heads; and they got it into their heads
that Brummy Usen was shot while trying to bail up old Mr S—— and was dead and
buried.
“But the wife of the
publican that had the saw-pit knew him; he went to her, and she recognized him
at once; she’d got it into her head from the first that it wasn’t Brummy that
was shot, and she stuck to it—she was just as self-opinionated as the
neighbours, and many a barney she had with them about it. She would argue about
it till the day she died, and then she said with her dying breath: ‘It wasn’t
Brummy Usen.’ No more it was—he was a different kind of man; he hadn’t spunk
enough to be a bushranger, and it was a better man that was buried for him; it
was a different kind of woman, holding up a different kind of branch, that was
tattooed on Brummy’s arm. But, you see, Brummy’d always kept himself pretty
much to himself, and no one knew him very well; and, besides, most of them were
pretty drunk at the inquest—except the girl, and she was too scared to know
what she was saying—they had to be so because the corpse was in such a bad
state.
“Well, Brummy hung
around for a time, and tried to prove that he wasn’t an impostor, but no one
wouldn’t believe him. He wanted to get some wages that was owing to him.
“He tried the police,
but they were just as obstinate as the rest; and, beside, they had their
dignity to hold up. ‘If I ain’t Brummy,’ he’d say, ‘who are I?’ But they
answered that he knew best. So he did.
“At last he said that it
didn’t matter much, any road; and so he went away—Lord knows where—to begin
life again, I s’pose.”
The traveller smoked
awhile reflectively; then he quietly rolled up his right sleeve and scratched
his arm.
And on that arm we saw
the tattooed figure of a woman, holding up a branch.
We tramped on by his
side again towards the station-thinking very hard and not feeling very
comfortable.
He must have been an
awful old liar, now we come to think of it.
The two-roomed house is
built of round timber, slabs, and stringy-bark, and floored with split slabs. A
big bark kitchen standing at one end is larger than the house itself, veranda
included.
Bush all round—bush with
no horizon, for the country is flat. No ranges in the distance. The bush
consists of stunted, rotten native apple-trees. No undergrowth. Nothing to
relieve the eye save the darker green of a few she-oaks which are sighing above
the narrow, almost waterless creek. Nineteen miles to the nearest sign of
civilization—a shanty on the main road.
The drover, an
ex-squatter, is away with sheep. His wife and children are left here alone.
Four ragged,
dried-up-looking children are playing about the house. Suddenly one of them
yells: “Snake! Mother, here’s a snake!”
The gaunt, sun-browned
bushwoman dashes from the kitchen, snatches her baby from the ground, holds it
on her left hip, and reaches for a stick.
“Where is it?”
“Here! gone into the
wood-heap!” yells the eldest boy—a sharp-faced urchin of eleven. “Stop there,
mother! I’ll have him. Stand back! I’ll have the beggar!”
“Tommy, come here, or
you’ll be bit. Come here at once when I tell you, you little wretch!”
The youngster comes
reluctantly, carrying a stick bigger than himself. Then he yells, triumphantly:
“There it goes—under the
house!” and darts away with club uplifted. At the same time the big, black,
yellow-eyed dog-of-all-breeds, who has shown the wildest interest in the
proceedings, breaks his chain and rushes after that snake. He is a moment late,
however, and his nose reaches the crack in the slabs just as the end of its
tail disappears. Almost at the same moment the boy’s club comes down and skins
the aforesaid nose. Alligator takes small notice of this, and proceeds to
undermine the building; but he is subdued after a struggle and chained up. They
cannot afford to lose him.
The drover’s wife makes
the children stand together near the dog-house while she watches for the snake.
She gets two small dishes of milk and sets them down near the wall to tempt it
to come out; but an hour goes by and it does not show itself.
It is near sunset, and a
thunderstorm is coming. The children must be brought inside. She will not take
them into the house, for she knows the snake is there, and may at any moment
come up through a crack in the rough slab floor; so she carries several armfuls
of firewood into the kitchen, and then takes the children there. The kitchen
has no floor—or, rather, an earthen one—called a “ground floor” in this part of
the bush. There is a large, roughly-made table in the centre of the place. She
brings the children in, and makes them get on this table. They are two boys and
two girls—mere babies. She gives them some supper, and then, before it gets
dark, she goes into the house, and snatches up some pillows and
bedclothes—expecting to see or lay her hand on the snake any minute. She makes
a bed on the kitchen table for the children, and sits down beside it to watch
all night.
She has an eye on the
corner, and a green sapling club laid in readiness on the dresser by her side;
also her sewing basket and a copy of the Young Ladies’ Journal. She
has brought the dog into the room.
Tommy turns in, under
protest, but says he’ll lie awake all night and smash that blinded snake.
His mother asks him how
many times she has told him not to swear.
He has his club with him
under the bedclothes, and Jacky protests:
“Mummy! Tommy’s skinnin’
me alive wif his club. Make him take it out.”
Tommy: “Shet up, you
little—-! D’yer want to be bit with the snake?”
Jacky shuts up.
“If yer bit,” says
Tommy, after a pause, “you’ll swell up, an’ smell, an’ turn red an’ green an’
blue all over till yer bust. Won’t he, mother?”
“Now then, don’t
frighten the child. Go to sleep,” she says.
The two younger children
go to sleep, and now and then Jacky complains of being “skeezed.” More room is
made for him. Presently Tommy says: “Mother! listen to them (adjective) little
possums. I’d like to screw their blanky necks.”
And Jacky protests
drowsily.
“But they don’t hurt us,
the little blanks!”.
Mother: “There, I told
you you’d teach Jacky to swear.” But the remark makes her smile. Jacky goes to
sleep. Presently Tommy asks:
“Mother! Do you think
they’ll ever extricate the (adjective) kangaroo?”
“Lord! How am I to know,
child? Go to sleep.”
“Will you wake me if the
snake comes out?”
“Yes. Go to sleep.”
Near midnight. The
children are all asleep and she sits there still, sewing and reading by turns.
From time to time she glances round the floor and wall-plate, and, whenever she
hears a noise, she reaches for the stick. The thunderstorm comes on, and the
wind, rushing through the cracks in the slab wall, threatens to blow out her
candle. She places it on a sheltered part of the dresser and fixes up a
newspaper to protect it. At every flash of lightning, the cracks between the
slabs gleam like polished silver. The thunder rolls, and the rain comes down in
torrents.
Alligator lies at full
length on the floor, with his eyes turned towards the partition. She knows by
this that the snake is there. There are large cracks in that wall opening under
the floor of the dwelling-house.
She is not a coward, but
recent events have shaken her nerves. A little son of her brother-in-law was
lately bitten by a snake, and died. Besides, she has not heard from her husband
for six months, and is anxious about him.
He was a drover, and
started squatting here when they were married. The drought of 18— ruined him.
He had to sacrifice the remnant of his flock and go droving again. He intends
to move his family into the nearest town when he comes back, and, in the meantime,
his brother, who keeps a shanty on the main road, comes over about once a month
with provisions. The wife has still a couple of cows, one horse, and a few
sheep. The brother-in-law kills one of the latter occasionally, gives her what
she needs of it, and takes the rest in return for other provisions. She is used
to being left alone. She once lived like this for eighteen months. As a girl
she built the usual castles in the air; but all her girlish hopes and
aspirations have long been dead. She finds all the excitement and recreation
she needs in the Young Ladies’ Journal, and Heaven help her! takes
a pleasure in the fashion-plates.
Her husband is an
Australian, and so is she. He is careless, but a good enough husband. If he had
the means he would take her to the city and keep her there like a princess.
They are used to being apart, or at least she is. “No use fretting,” she says.
He may forget sometimes that he is married; but if he has a good cheque when he
comes back he will give most of it to her. When he had money he took her to the
city several times—hired a railway sleeping compartment, and put up at the best
hotels. He also bought her a buggy, but they had to sacrifice that along with
the rest.
The last two children
were born in the bush—one while her husband was bringing a drunken doctor, by
force, to attend to her. She was alone on this occasion, and very weak. She had
been ill with a fever. She prayed to God to send her assistance. God sent Black
Mary—the “whitest” gin in all the land. Or, at least, God sent King Jimmy
first, and he sent Black Mary. He put his black face round the door post, took
in the situation at a glance, and said cheerfully: “All right, missus—I bring
my old woman, she down alonga creek.”
One of the children died
while she was here alone. She rode nineteen miles for assistance, carrying the
dead child.
It must be near one or
two o’clock. The fire is burning low. Alligator lies with his head resting on
his paws, and watches the wall. He is not a very beautiful dog, and the light
shows numerous old wounds where the hair will not grow. He is afraid of nothing
on the face of the earth or under it. He will tackle a bullock as readily as he
will tackle a flea. He hates all other dogs—except kangaroo-dogs—and has a
marked dislike to friends or relations of the family. They seldom call,
however. He sometimes makes friends with strangers. He hates snakes and has
killed many, but he will be bitten some day and die; most snake-dogs end that
way.
Now and then the
bushwoman lays down her work and watches, and listens, and thinks. She thinks
of things in her own life, for there is little else to think about.
The rain will make the
grass grow, and this reminds her how she fought a bush-fire once while her
husband was away. The grass was long, and very dry, and the fire threatened to
burn her out. She put on an old pair of her husband’s trousers and beat out the
flames with a green bough, till great drops of sooty perspiration stood out on
her forehead and ran in streaks down her blackened arms. The sight of his
mother in trousers greatly amused Tommy, who worked like a little hero by her
side, but the terrified baby howled lustily for his “mummy.” The fire would
have mastered her but for four excited bushmen who arrived in the nick of time.
It was a mixed-up affair all round; when she went to take up the baby he
screamed and struggled convulsively, thinking it was a “blackman;” and
Alligator, trusting more to the child’s sense than his own instinct, charged
furiously, and (being old and slightly deaf) did not in his excitement at first
recognize his mistress’s voice, but continued to hang on to the moleskins until
choked off by Tommy with a saddle-strap. The dog’s sorrow for his blunder, and
his anxiety to let it be known that it was all a mistake, was as evident as his
ragged tail and a twelve-inch grin could make it. It was a glorious time for
the boys; a day to look back to, and talk about, and laugh over for many years.
She thinks how she
fought a flood during her husband’s absence. She stood for hours in the
drenching downpour, and dug an overflow gutter to save the dam across the
creek. But she could not save it. There are things that a bushwoman can not do.
Next morning the dam was broken, and her heart was nearly broken too, for she
thought how her husband would feel when he came home and saw the result of
years of labour swept away. She cried then.
She also fought the
pleuro-pneumonia—dosed and bled the few remaining cattle, and wept again when
her two best cows died.
Again, she fought a mad
bullock that besieged the house for a day. She made bullets and fired at him
through cracks in the slabs with an old shot-gun. He was dead in the morning.
She skinned him and got seventeen-and-sixpence for the hide.
She also fights the
crows and eagles that have designs on her chickens. Her plan of campaign is
very original. The children cry “Crows, mother!” and she rushes out and aims a
broomstick at the birds as though it were a gun, and says “Bung!” The crows
leave in a hurry; they are cunning, but a woman’s cunning is greater.
Occasionally a bushman
in the horrors, or a villainous-looking sundowner, comes and nearly scares the
life out of her. She generally tells the suspicious-looking stranger that her
husband and two sons are at work below the dam, or over at the yard, for he
always cunningly inquires for the boss.
Only last week a
gallows-faced swagman—having satisfied himself that there were no men on the
place—threw his swag down on the veranda, and demanded tucker. She gave him
something to eat; then he expressed his intention of staying for the night. It
was sundown then. She got a batten from the sofa, loosened the dog, and
confronted the stranger, holding the batten in one hand and the dog’s collar
with the other. “Now you go!” she said. He looked at her and at the dog, said
“All right, mum,” in a cringing tone, and left. She was a determined-looking
woman, and Alligator’s yellow eyes glared unpleasantly—besides, the dog’s
chawing-up apparatus greatly resembled that of the reptile he was named after.
She has few pleasures to
think of as she sits here alone by the fire, on guard against a snake. All days
are much the same to her; but on Sunday afternoon she dresses herself, tidies
the children, smartens up baby, and goes for a lonely walk along the bush-track,
pushing an old perambulator in front of her. She does this every Sunday. She
takes as much care to make herself and the children look smart as she would if
she were going to do the block in the city. There is nothing to see, however,
and not a soul to meet. You might walk for twenty miles along this track
without being able to fix a point in your mind, unless you are a bushman. This
is because of the everlasting, maddening sameness of the stunted trees—that
monotony which makes a man long to break away and travel as far as trains can
go, and sail as far as ship can sail—and farther.
But this bushwoman is
used to the loneliness of it. As a girl-wife she hated it, but now she would
feel strange away from it.
She is glad when her
husband returns, but she does not gush or make a fuss about it. She gets him
something good to eat, and tidies up the children.
She seems contented with
her lot. She loves her children, but has no time to show it. She seems harsh to
them. Her surroundings are not favourable to the development of the “womanly”
or sentimental side of nature.
It must be near morning
now; but the clock is in the dwellinghouse. Her candle is nearly done; she
forgot that she was out of candles. Some more wood must be got to keep the fire
up, and so she shuts the dog inside and hurries round to the woodheap. The rain
has cleared off. She seizes a stick, pulls it out, and—crash! the whole pile
collapses.
Yesterday she bargained
with a stray blackfellow to bring her some wood, and while he was at work she went
in search of a missing cow. She was absent an hour or so, and the native black
made good use of his time. On her return she was so astonished to see a good
heap of wood by the chimney, that she gave him an extra fig of tobacco, and
praised him for not being lazy. He thanked her, and left with head erect and
chest well out. He was the last of his tribe and a King; but he had built that
wood-heap hollow.
She is hurt now, and
tears spring to her eyes as she sits down again by the table. She takes up a
handkerchief to wipe the tears away, but pokes her eyes with her bare fingers
instead. The handkerchief is full of holes, and she finds that she has put her
thumb through one, and her forefinger through another.
This makes her laugh, to
the surprise of the dog. She has a keen, very keen, sense of the ridiculous;
and some time or other she will amuse bushmen with the story.
She had been amused
before like that. One day she sat down “to have a good cry,” as she said—and
the old cat rubbed against her dress and “cried too.” Then she had to laugh.
It must be near daylight
now. The room is very close and hot because of the fire. Alligator still
watches the wall from time to time. Suddenly he becomes greatly interested; he
draws himself a few inches nearer the partition, and a thrill runs through his
body. The hair on the back of his neck begins to bristle, and the battle-light
is in his yellow eyes. She knows what this means, and lays her hand on the
stick. The lower end of one of the partition slabs has a large crack on both
sides. An evil pair of small, bright bead-like eyes glisten at one of these
holes. The snake—a black one—comes slowly out, about a foot, and moves its head
up and down. The dog lies still, and the woman sits as one fascinated. The
snake comes out a foot farther. She lifts her stick, and the reptile, as though
suddenly aware of danger, sticks his head in through the crack on the other
side of the slab, and hurries to get his tail round after him. Alligator
springs, and his jaws come together with a snap. He misses, for his nose is
large, and the snake’s body close down in the angle formed by the slabs and the
floor. He snaps again as the tail comes round. He has the snake now, and tugs
it out eighteen inches. Thud, thud comes the woman’s club on the ground.
Alligator pulls again. Thud, thud. Alligator gives another pull and he has the
snake out—a black brute, five feet long. The head rises to dart about, but the
dog has the enemy close to the neck. He is a big, heavy dog, but quick as a
terrier. He shakes the snake as though he felt the original curse in common
with mankind. The eldest boy wakes up, seizes his stick, and tries to get out
of bed, but his mother forces him back with a grip of iron. Thud, thud—the
snake’s back is broken in several places. Thud, thud—its head is crushed, and
Alligator’s nose skinned again.
She lifts the mangled
reptile on the point of her stick, carries it to the fire, and throws it in;
then piles on the wood and watches the snake burn. The boy and dog watch too.
She lays her hand on the dog’s head, and all the fierce, angry light dies out
of his yellow eyes. The younger children are quieted, and presently go to
sleep. The dirty-legged boy stands for a moment in his shirt, watching the
fire. Presently he looks up at her, sees the tears in her eyes, and, throwing
his arms round her neck exclaims:
“Mother, I won’t never
go drovin’; blarst me if I do!” And she hugs him to her worn-out breast and
kisses him; and they sit thus together while the sickly daylight breaks over
the bush.
Steelman was a hard
case, but some said that Smith was harder. Steelman was big and good-looking,
and good-natured in his way; he was a spieler, pure and simple, but did things
in humorous style. Smith was small and weedy, of the sneak variety; he had a
whining tone and a cringing manner. He seemed to be always so afraid you were
going to hit him that he would make you want to hit him on that account alone.
Steelman “had” you in a
fashion that would make your friends laugh. Smith would “have” you in a way
which made you feel mad at the bare recollection of having been taken in by so
contemptible a little sneak.
They battled round
together in the North Island of Maoriland for a couple of years.
One day Steelman said to
Smith:
“Look here, Smithy, you
don’t know you’re born yet. I’m going to take you in hand and teach you.”
And he did. If Smith
wouldn’t do as Steelman told him, or wasn’t successful in cadging, or mugged
any game they had in hand, Steelman would threaten to stoush him; and, if the
warning proved ineffectual after the second or third time, he would stoush him.
One day, on the track,
they came to a place where an old Scottish couple kept a general store and
shanty. They camped alongside the road, and Smith was just starting up to the
house to beg supplies when Steelman cried:
“Here!—hold on. Now
where do you think you’re going to?”
“Why, I’m going to try
and chew the old party’s lug, of course. We’ll be out of tucker in a couple of
days,” said Smith.
Steelman sat down on a
stump in a hopeless, discouraged sort of way.
“It’s no use,” he said,
regarding Smith with mingled reproach and disgust. “It’s no use. I might as
well give it best. I can see that it’s only waste of time trying to learn you
anything. Will I ever be able to knock some gumption into your thick skull?
After all the time and trouble and pains I’ve took with your education, you
hain’t got any more sense than to go and mug a business like that! When will
you learn sense? Hey? After all, I—Smith, you’re a born mug!”
He always called Smith a
“mug” when he was particularly wild at him, for it hurt Smith more than
anything else. “There’s only two classes in the world, spielers and mugs—and
you’re a mug, Smith.”
“What have I done,
anyway?” asked Smith helplessly. “That’s all I want to know.”
Steelman wearily rested
his brow on his hand.
“That will do, Smith,”
he said listlessly; “don’t say another word, old man; it’ll only make my head
worse; don’t talk. You might, at the very least, have a little consideration
for my feelings—even if you haven’t for your own interests.” He paused and
regarded Smith sadly. “Well, I’ll give you another show. I’ll stage the
business for you.”
He made Smith doff his
coat and get into his worst pair of trousers—and they were bad enough; they
were hopelessly “gone” beyond the extreme limit of bush decency. He made Smith
put on a rag of a felt hat and a pair of “’lastic-sides” which had fallen off a
tramp and lain baking and rotting by turns on a rubbish heap; they had to be
tied on Smith with bits of rag and string. He drew dark shadows round Smith’s
eyes, and burning spots on his cheek-bones with some greasepaints he used when
they travelled as “The Great Steelman and Smith Combination Star Dramatic Co.”
He damped Smith’s hair to make it dark and lank, and his face more corpse-like
by comparison—in short, he made him up to look like a man who had long passed
the very last stage of consumption, and had been artificially kept alive in the
interests of science.
“Now you’re ready,” said
Steelman to Smith. “You left your whare the day before yesterday and started to
walk to the hospital at Palmerston. An old mate picked you up dying on the
road, brought you round, and carried you on his back most of the way here. You
firmly believe that Providence had something to do with the sending of that old
mate along at that time and place above all others. Your mate also was hard up;
he was going to a job—the first show for work he’d had in nine months—but he
gave it up to see you through; he’d give up his life rather than desert a mate
in trouble. You only want a couple of shillings or a bit of tucker to help you
on to Palmerston. You know you’ve got to die, and you only want to live long
enough to get word to your poor old mother, and die on a bed.
“Remember, they’re
Scotch up at that house. You understand the Scotch barrack pretty well by
now—if you don’t it ain’t my fault. You were born in Aberdeen, but came out too
young to remember much about the town. Your father’s dead. You ran away to sea
and came out in the Bobbie Burns to Sydney. Your poor old
mother’s in Aberdeen now—Bruce or Wallace Wynd will do. Your mother might be
dead now—poor old soul!—any way, you’ll never see her again. You wish you’d
never run away from home. You wish you’d been a better son to your poor old
mother; you wish you’d written to her and answered her last letter. You only
want to live long enough to write home and ask for forgiveness and a blessing
before you die. If you had a drop of spirits of some sort to brace you up you
might get along the road better. (Put this delicately.) Get the whine out of
your voice and breathe with a wheeze—like this; get up the nearest approach to
a deathrattle that you can. Move as if you were badly hurt in your wind—like
this. (If you don’t do it better’n that, I’ll stoush you.) Make your face a bit
longer and keep your lips dry—don’t lick them, you damned fool!-breathe on
them; make ’em dry as chips. That’s the only decent pair of breeks you’ve got,
and the only shoon. You’re a Presbyterian—not a U.P., the Auld Kirk. Your mate
would have come up to the house only—well, you’ll have to use the stuffing in
your head a bit; you can’t expect me to do all the brain work. Remember it’s
consumption you’ve got—galloping consumption; you know all the symptoms—pain on
top of your right lung, bad cough, and night sweats. Something tells you that
you won’t see the new year—it’s a week off Christmas now. And if you come back
without anything, I’ll blessed soon put you out of your misery.”
Smith came back with
about four pounds of shortbread and as much various tucker as they could
conveniently carry; a pretty good suit of cast-off tweeds; a new pair of
’lastic-sides from the store stock; two bottles of patent medicine and a black
bottle half-full of home-made consumption-cure; also a letter to a
hospital-committee man, and three shillings to help him on his way to
Palmerston. He also got about half a mile of sympathy, religious consolation,
and medical advice which he didn’t remember.
“Now,” he said,
triumphantly, “am I a mug or not?”
Steelman kindly ignored
the question. “I did have a better opinion of the Scotch,” he
said, contemptuously.
Steelman got on at an
hotel as billiard-marker and decoy, and in six months he managed that pub.
Smith, who’d been away on his own account, turned up in the town one day clean
broke, and in a deplorable state. He heard of Steelman’s luck, and thought he
was “all right,” so went to his old friend.
Cold type—or any other
kind of type—couldn’t do justice to Steelman’s disgust. To think that this was
the reward of all the time and trouble he’d spent on Smith’s education!
However, when he cooled down, he said:
“Smith, you’re a young
man yet, and it’s never too late to mend. There is still time for reformation.
I can’t help you now; it would only demoralize you altogether. To think, after
the way I trained you, you can’t battle round any better’n this! I always
thought you were an irreclaimable mug, but I expected better things of you
towards the end. I thought I’d make something of you. It’s
enough to dishearten any man and disgust him with the world. Why! you ought to
be a rich man now with the chances and training you had! To think—but I won’t
talk of that; it has made me ill. I suppose I’ll have to give you something, if
it’s only to get rid of the sight of you. Here’s a quid, and I’m a mug for
giving it to you. It’ll do you more harm than good; and it ain’t a friendly
thing nor the right thing for me—who always had your welfare at heart—to give
it to you under the circumstances. Now, get away out of my sight, and don’t
come near me till you’ve reformed. If you do, I’ll have to stoush you out of
regard for my own health and feelings.”
But Steelman came down
in the world again and picked up Smith on the road, and they battled round
together for another year or so; and at last they were in Wellington—Steelman
“flush” and stopping at an hotel, and Smith stumped, as usual, and staying with
a friend. One night they were drinking together at the hotel, at the expense of
some mugs whom Steelman was “educating.” It was raining hard. When Smith was
going home, he said:
“Look here, Steely, old
man. Listen to the rain! I’ll get wringing wet going home. You might as well
lend me your overcoat to-night. You won’t want it, and I won’t hurt it.”
And, Steelman’s heart
being warmed by his successes, he lent the overcoat.
Smith went and pawned
it, got glorious on the proceeds, and took the pawn-ticket to Steelman next
day.
Smith had reformed.
Brook let down the
heavy, awkward sliprails, and the gaunt cattle stumbled through, with
aggravating deliberation, and scattered slowly among the native apple-trees
along the sidling. First there came an old easygoing red poley cow, then a
dusty white cow; then two shaggy, half-grown calves—who seemed already to have
lost all interest in existence—and after them a couple of “babies,” sleek,
glossy, and cheerful; then three more tired-looking cows, with ragged udders
and hollow sides; then a lanky barren heifer—red, of course—with half-blind
eyes and one crooked horn—she was noted for her great agility in jumping
two-rail fences, and she was known to the selector as “Queen Elizabeth;” and
behind her came a young cream-coloured milker—a mighty proud and contented
young mother—painfully and patiently dragging her first calf, which was hanging
obstinately to a teat, with its head beneath her hind legs. Last of all there
came the inevitable red steer, who scratched the dust and let a stupid
“bwoo-ur-r-rr” out of him as he snuffed at the rails.
Brook had shifted the
rails there often before—fifteen years ago—perhaps the selfsame rails, for
stringy-bark lasts long; and the action brought the past near to him—nearer
than he wished. He did not like to think of that hungry, wretched selection
existence; he felt more contempt than pity for the old-fashioned, unhappy boy,
who used to let down the rails there, and drive the cattle through.
He had spent those
fifteen years in cities, and had come here, prompted more by curiosity than
anything else, to have a quiet holiday. His father was dead; his other
relations had moved away, leaving a tenant on the old selection.
Brook rested his elbow
on the top rail of an adjacent panel and watched the cattle pass, and thought
until Lizzie—the tenant’s niece—shoved the red steer through and stood gravely
regarding him (Brook, and not the steer); then he shifted his back to the fence
and looked at her. He had not much to look at: a short, plain, thin girl of
nineteen, with rather vacant grey eyes, dark ringlets, and freckles; she had no
complexion to speak of; she wore an ill-fitting print frock, and a pair of
men’s ’lastic-sides several sizes too large for her. She was “studying for a
school-teacher;” that was the height of the ambition of local youth. Brook was
studying her.
He turned away to put up
the rails. The lower rail went into its place all right, but the top one had
got jammed, and it stuck as though it was spiked. He worked the rail up and
down and to and fro, took it under his arm and tugged it; but he might as well
have pulled at one of the posts. Then he lifted the loose end as high as he
could, and let it fall—jumping back out of the way at the same time; this
loosened it, but when he lifted it again it slid so easily and far into its
socket that the other end came out and fell, barking Brook’s knee. He swore a
little, then tackled the rail again; he had the same trouble as before with the
other end, but succeeded at last. Then he turned away, rubbing his knee.
Lizzie hadn’t smiled,
not once; she watched him gravely all the while.
“Did you hurt your
knee?” she asked, without emotion.
“No. The rail did.”
She reflected solemnly
for a while, and then asked him if it felt sore.
He replied rather
briefly in the negative.
“They were always nasty,
awkward rails to put up,” she remarked, after some more reflection.
Brook agreed, and then
they turned their faces towards the homestead. Half-way down the sidling was a
clump of saplings, with a big log lying amongst them. Here Brook paused. “We’ll
sit down for a while and have a rest,” said he. “Sit down, Lizzie.”
She obeyed with the
greatest of gravity. Nothing was said for awhile. She sat with her hands folded
in her lap, gazing thoughtfully at the ridge, which was growing dim. It looked
better when it was dim, and so did the rest of the scenery. There was no beauty
lost when darkness hid the scenery altogether. Brook wondered what the girl was
thinking about. The silence between them did not seem awkward, somehow; but it
didn’t suit him just then, and so presently he broke it.
“Well, I must go
to-morrow.”
“Must you?”
“Yes.”
She thought awhile, and
then she asked him if he was glad to go.
“Well, I don’t know. Are
you sorry, Lizzie?”
She thought a good long
while, and then she said she was.
He moved closer to the
girl, and suddenly slipped his arm round her waist. She did not seem agitated;
she still gazed dreamily at the line of ridges, but her head inclined slightly
towards him.
“Lizzie, did you ever
love anyone?”—then anticipating the usual reply—“except, of course, your father
and mother, and all that sort of thing.” Then, abruptly: “I mean did you ever
have a sweetheart?”
She reflected, so as to
be sure; then she said she hadn’t. Long pause, and he, the city man, breathed
hard—not the girl. Suddenly he moved nervously, and said:
“Lizzie—Lizzie! Do you
know what love means?”
She pondered over this
for some minutes, as a result of which she said she thought that she did.
“Lizzie! Do you think
you can love me?”
She didn’t seem able to
find an answer to that. So he caught her to him in both arms, and kissed her
hard and long on the mouth. She was agitated now—he had some complexion now;
she struggled to her feet, trembling.
“We must go now,” she
said quickly. “They will be waiting for tea.”
He stood up before her,
and held her there by both hands.
“There is plenty of
time. Lizzie—”
“Mis-ter Br-o-o-k-er!
Li-i-z-zee-e-e! Come ter yer tea-e-e!” yelled a boy from the house.
“We must really go now.”
“Oh, they can wait a
minute. Lizzie, don’t be frightened”—bending his head—“Lizzie, put your arms
round my neck and kiss me—now. Do as I tell you, Lizzie—they cannot see us,”
and he drew her behind a bush. “Now, Lizzie.”
She obeyed just as a
frightened child might.
“We must go now,” she
panted, breathless from such an embrace.
“Lizzie, you will come
for a walk with me after tea?”
“I don’t know—I can’t
promise. I don’t think it would be right. Aunt mightn’t like me to.”
“Never mind aunt. I’ll
fix her. We’ll go for a walk over to the school-teacher’s place. It will be
bright moonlight.”
“I don’t like to promise.
My father and mother might not—”
“Why, what are you
frightened of? What harm is there in it?” Then, softly, “Promise, Lizzie.”
“Promise, Lizzie.”
She was hesitating.
“Promise, Lizzie. I’m
going away to-morrow—might never see you again. You will come, Lizzie? It will
be our last talk together. Promise, Lizzie.... Oh, then, if you don’t like to,
I won’t press you.... Will you come, or no?”
“Ye-es.”
“One more, and I’ll take
you home.”
It was nearly dark.
Brook was moved to get
up early next morning and give the girl a hand with the cows. There were two
rickety bails in the yard. He had not forgotten how to milk, but the occupation
gave him no pleasure—it brought the past near again.
Now and then he would
turn his face, rest his head against the side of the cow, and watch Lizzie at
her work; and each time she would, as though in obedience to an influence she
could not resist, turn her face to him—having noted the pause in his milking.
There was a wonder in her expression—as if something had come into her life which
she could not realize—curiosity in his.
When the spare pail was
full, he would follow her with it to the little bark dairy; and she held out
the cloth which served as a strainer whilst he poured the milk in, and, as the
last drops went through, their mouths would come together.
He carried the
slop-buckets to the pigsty for her, and helped to poddy (hand feed) a young
calf. He had to grip the calf by the nape of the neck, insert a forefinger in
its mouth, and force its nose down into an oil-drum full of skim milk. The calf
sucked, thinking it had a teat; and so it was taught to drink. But calves have
a habit, born of instinct, of butting the udders with their noses, by way of
reminding their mothers to let down the milk; and so this calf butted at times,
splashing sour milk over Brook, and barking his wrist against the sharp edge of
the drum. Then he would swear a little, and Lizzie would smile sadly and
gravely.
Brook did not go away
that day, nor the next, but he took the coach on the third day thereafter. He
and Lizzie found a quiet corner to say good-bye in. She showed some emotion for
the first time, or, perhaps, the second—maybe the third time—in that week of
her life. They had been out together in the moonlight every evening. (Brook had
been fifteen years in cities.) They had scarcely looked at each other that
morning—and scarcely spoken.
He looked back as the
coach started and saw her sitting inside the big kitchen window. She waved her
hand—hopelessly it seemed. She had rolled up her sleeve, and to Brook the arm
seemed strangely white and fair above the line of sunburn round the wrist. He
hadn’t noticed it before. Her face seemed fairer too, but, perhaps, it was only
the effect of light and shade round that window.
He looked back again, as
the coach turned the corner of the fence, and was just in time to see her bury
her face in her hands with a passionate gesture which did not seem natural to
her.
Brook reached the city
next evening, and, “after hours,” he staggered in through a side entrance to
the lighted parlour of a private bar.
They say that Lizzie
broke her heart that year, but, then, the world does not believe in such things
nowadays.
One o’clock on Saturday.
The unemployed’s one o’clock on Saturday! Nothing more can be done this week,
so you drag yourself wearily and despairingly “home,” with the cheerful
prospect of a penniless Saturday afternoon and evening and the long horrible
Australian-city Sunday to drag through. One of the landlady’s clutch—and
she is an old hen—opens the door, exclaims:
“Oh, Mr Careless!” and
grins. You wait an anxious minute, to postpone the disappointment which you
feel by instinct is coming, and then ask hopelessly whether there are any
letters for you.
“No, there’s nothing for
you, Mr Careless.” Then in answer to the unspoken question, “The postman’s
been, but there’s nothing for you.”
You hang up your hat in
the stuffy little passage, and start upstairs, when, “Oh, Mr Careless, mother
wants to know if you’ve had yer dinner.”
You haven’t, but you say
you have. You are empty enough inside, but the emptiness is filled up, as it
were, with the wrong sort of hungry vacancy—gnawing anxiety. You haven’t any
stomach for the warm, tasteless mess which has been “kep’ ’ot” for you in a
cold stove. You feel just physically tired enough to go to your room, lie down
on the bed, and snatch twenty minutes’ rest from that terrible unemployed
restlessness which, you know, is sure to drag you to your feet to pace the room
or tramp the pavement even before your bodily weariness has nearly left you. So
you start up the narrow, stuffy little flight of steps call the “stairs.” Three
small doors open from the landing—a square place of about four feet by four.
The first door is yours; it is open, and—
Decided odour of bedroom
dust and fluff, damped and kneaded with cold soap-suds. Rear view of a girl
covered with a damp, draggled, dirt-coloured skirt, which gapes at the
waistband from the “body,” disclosing a good glimpse of soiled stays (ribs
burst), and yawns behind over a decidedly dirty white petticoat, the slit of
which last, as she reaches forward and backs out convulsively, half opens and
then comes together in an unsatisfactory, startling, tantalizing way, and
allows a hint of a red flannel under-something. The frayed ends of the skirt
lie across a hopelessly-burst pair of elastic-sides which rest on their inner
edges—toes out—and jerk about in a seemingly undecided manner. She is damping
and working up the natural layer on the floor with a piece of old flannel petticoat
dipped occasionally in a bucket which stands by her side, containing about a
quart of muddy water. She looks round and exclaims, “Oh, did you want to come
in, Mr Careless?” Then she says she’ll be done in a minute; furthermore she
remarks that if you want to come in you won’t be in her road. You don’t—you go
down to the dining-room—parlour—sitting-room—-nursery—and stretch yourself on
the sofa in the face of the painfully-evident disapproval of the landlady.
You have been here, say,
three months, and are only about two weeks behind. The landlady still says,
“Good morning, Mr Careless,” or “Good evening, Mr Careless,” but there is an
unpleasant accent on the “Mr,” and a still more unpleasantly pronounced stress
on the “morning” or “evening.” While your money lasted you paid up well and
regularly—sometimes in advance—and dined out most of the time; but that doesn’t
count now.
Ten minutes pass, and
then the landlady’s disapproval becomes manifest and aggressive. One of the
little girls, a sharp-faced little larrikiness, who always wears a furtive grin
of cunning—it seems as though it were born with her, and is perhaps more a
misfortune than a fault—comes in and says please she wants to tidy up.
So you get up and take
your hat and go out again to look for a place to rest in—to try not to think.
You wish you
could get away up-country. You also wish you were dead.
The landlady, Mrs Jones,
is a widow, or grass-widow, Welsh, of course, and clannish; flat face, watery
grey eyes, shallow, selfish, ignorant, and a hypocrite unconsciously—by
instinct.
But the worst of it is
that Mrs Jones takes advantage of the situation to corner you in the passage
when you want to get out, or when you come in tired, and talk. It amounts to
about this: She has been fourteen years in this street, taking in boarders;
everybody knows her; everybody knows Mrs Jones; her poor husband died six years
ago (God rest his soul); she finds it hard to get a living these times; work,
work, morning, noon, and night (talk, talk, talk, more likely). “Do you know Mr
Duff of the Labour Bureau?” He has known her family for years; a very nice
gentleman—a very nice gentleman indeed; he often stops at the gate to have a
yarn with her on his way to the office (he must be hard up for a yarn). She
doesn’t know hardly nobody in this street; she never gossips; it takes her all
her time to get a living; she can’t be bothered with neighbours; it’s always
best to keep to yourself and keep neighbours at a distance. Would you believe
it, Mr Careless, she has been two years in this house and hasn’t said above a
dozen words to the woman next door; she’d just know her by sight if she saw
her; as for the other woman she wouldn’t know her from a crow. Mr Blank and Mrs
Blank could tell you the same.... She always had gentlemen staying with her;
she never had no cause to complain of one of them except once; they always
treated her fair and honest. Here follows story about the exception; he, I
gathered, was a journalist, and she could never depend on him. He seemed, from
her statements, to have been decidedly erratic in his movements, mode of life
and choice of climes. He evidently caused her a great deal of trouble and
anxiety, and I felt a kind of sneaking sympathy for his memory. One young
fellow stayed with her five years; he was, etc. She couldn’t be hard on any
young fellow that gets out of work; of course if he can’t get it he can’t pay;
she can’t get blood out of a stone; she couldn’t turn him out in the street.
“I’ve got sons of my own, Mr Careless, I’ve got sons of my own.”... She is sure
she always does her best to make her boarders comfortable, and if they want
anything they’ve only got to ask for it. The kettle is always on the stove if
you want a cup of tea, and if you come home late at night and want a bit of
supper you’ve only got to go to the safe (which of us would dare?). She never
locks it, she never did.... And then she begins about her wonderful kids, and
it goes on hour after hour. Lord! it’s enough to drive a man mad.
We were recommended to
this place on the day of our arrival by a young dealer in the furniture line,
whose name was Moses—and he looked like it, but we didn’t think of that at the
time. He had Mrs Jones’s card in his window, and he left the shop in charge of
his missus and came round with us at once. He assured us that we couldn’t do
better than stay with her. He said she was a most respectable lady, and all her
boarders were decent young fellows-gentlemen; she kept everything scrupulously
clean, and kept the best table in town, and she’d do for us (washing included)
for eighteen shillings per week; she generally took the first week in advance.
We asked him to have a beer—for the want of somebody else to ask—and after that
he said that Mrs Jones was a kind, motherly body, and understood young fellows;
and that we’d be even more comfortable than in our own home; that we’d be
allowed to do as we liked—she wasn’t particular; she wouldn’t mind it a bit if
we came home late once in a way—she was used to that, in fact; she liked to see
young fellows enjoying themselves. We afterwards found out that he got so much
on every boarder he captured. We also found out—after paying in advance—-that
her gentlemen generally sent out their white things to be done; she only did
the coloured things, so we had to pay a couple of bob extra a week to have our
“biled” rags and collars sent out and done; and after the first week they bore
sad evidence of having been done on the premises by one of the frowsy
daughters. But we paid all the same. And, good Lord! if she keeps the best
table in town, we are curious to see the worst. When you go down to breakfast
you find on the table in front of your chair a cold plate, with a black
something—God knows what it looks like—in the centre of it. It eats like
something scraped off the inside of a hide and burnt; and with this you have a
cup of warm grey slush called a “cup of tea.” Dinner: A slice of alleged roast
beef or boiled mutton, of no particular colour or taste; three new spuds, of
which the largest is about the size of an ordinary hen’s egg, the smallest that
of a bantam’s, and the middle one in between, and which eat soggy and have no
taste to speak of, save that they are a trifle bitter; a dab of
unhealthy-looking green something, which might be either cabbage leaves or
turnip-tops, and a glass of water. The whole mess is lukewarm, including the
water—it would all be better cold. Tea: A thin slice of the aforesaid alleged
roast or mutton, and the pick of about six thin slices of stale bread—evidently
cut the day before yesterday. This is the way Mrs Jones “does” for us for
eighteen shillings a week. The bread gave out at tea-time this evening, and a
mild financial boarder tapped his plate with his knife, and sent the bread
plate out to be replenished. It came back with one slice on
it.
The mild financial
boarder, with desperate courage, is telling the landlady that he’ll have to
shift next week—it is too far to go to work, he cannot always get down in time;
he is very sorry he has to go, he says; he is very comfortable here, but it can’t
be helped; anyway, as soon as he can get work nearer, he’ll come back at once;
also (oh, what cowards men are when women are concerned), he says he wishes she
could shift and take a house down at the other end of the town. She says (at
least here are some fragments of her gabble which we caught and shorthanded):
“Well, I’m very sorry to lose you, Mr Sampson, very sorry indeed; but of course
if you must go, you must. Of course you can’t be expected to walk that distance
every morning, and you mustn’t be getting to work late, and losing your
place... Of course we could get breakfast an hour earlier if... well, as I said
before, I’m sorry to lose you and, indeed... You won’t forget to come and see
us... glad to see you at any time... Well, any way, if you ever want to come
back, you know, your bed will be always ready for you, and you’ll be treated
just the same, and made just as comfortable—you won’t forget that” (he says he
won’t); “and you won’t forget to come to dinner sometimes” (he says he won’t); “and,
of course... You know I always try... Don’t forget to drop in sometimes...
Well, anyway, if you ever do happen to hear of a decent young fellow who wants
a good, clean, comfortable home, you’ll be sure to send him to me, will you?”
(He says he will.) “Well, of course, Mr Sampson, etc., etc., etc., and-so-on,
and-so-on, and-so-on, and-so-on,...” It’s enough to give a man rats.
He escapes, and we
regard his departure very much as a gang of hopeless convicts might regard the
unexpected liberation of one of their number.
This is the sort of life
that gives a man a God-Almighty longing to break away and take to the bush.
I lately met an old
schoolmate of mine up-country. He was much changed. He was tall and lank, and
had the most hideous bristly red beard I ever saw. He was working on his
father’s farm. He shook hands, looked anywhere but in my face—and said nothing.
Presently I remarked at a venture “So poor old Mr B., the schoolmaster, is
dead.”
“My oath!” he replied.
“He was a good old sort.”
“My oath!”
“Time goes by pretty
quick, doesn’t it?”
His oath (colonial).
“Poor old Mr B. died
awfully sudden, didn’t he?”
He looked up the hill,
and said: “My oath!”
Then he added: “My
blooming oath!”
I thought, perhaps, my
city rig or manner embarrassed him, so I stuck my hands in my pockets, spat,
and said, to set him at his ease: “It’s blanky hot to-day. I don’t know how you
blanky blanks stand such blank weather! It’s blanky well hot enough to roast a
crimson carnal bullock; ain’t it?” Then I took out a cake of tobacco, bit off a
quarter, and pretended to chew. He replied:
“My oath!”
The conversation flagged
here. But presently, to my great surprise, he came to the rescue with:
“He finished me, yer
know.”
“Finished? How? Who?”
He looked down towards the
river, thought (if he did think) and said: “Finished me edyercation, yer know.”
“Oh! you mean Mr B.?”
“My oath—he finished me
first-rate.”
“He turned out a good
many scholars, didn’t he?”
“My oath! I’m thinkin’
about going down to the trainin’ school.”’
“You ought to—I would if
I were you.”
“My oath!”
“Those were good old
times,” I hazarded, “you remember the old bark school?”
He looked away across
the sidling, and was evidently getting uneasy. He shifted about, and said:
“Well, I must be goin’.”
“I suppose you’re pretty
busy now?”
“My oath! So long.”
“Well, good-bye. We must
have a yarn some day.”
“My oath!”
He got away as quickly
as he could.
I wonder whether
he was changed after all—or, was it I? A man does seem to get
out of touch with the bush after living in cities for eight or ten years.
“Does Arvie live here,
old woman?”
“Why?”
“Strike me dead! carn’t
yer answer a civil queschin?”
“How dare you talk to me
like that, you young larrikin! Be off! or I’ll send for a policeman.”
“Blarst the cops! D’yer
think I cares for ’em? Fur two pins I’d fetch a push an’ smash yer ole shanty
about yer ears—y’ole cow! I only arsked if Arvie lived here! Holy
Mosis! carn’t a feller ask a civil queschin?”
“What do you want with
Arvie? Do you know him?”
“My oath! Don’t he work
at Grinder Brothers? I only come out of my way to do him a good turn; an’ now
I’m sorry I come—damned if I ain’t—to be barracked like this, an’ shoved down
my own throat. (Pause) I want to tell Arvie that if he don’t come ter work
termorrer, another bloke’ll collar his job. I wouldn’t like to see a cove
collar a cove’s job an’ not tell a bloke about it. What’s up with Arvie,
anyhow? Is he sick?”
“Arvie is dead!”
“Christ! (Pause)
Garn! What-yer-giv’n-us? Tell Arvie Bill Anderson wants-ter see him.”
“My God! haven’t I got
enough trouble without a young wretch like you coming to torment me? For God’s
sake go away and leave me alone! I’m telling you the truth, my my poor boy died
of influenza last night.”
“My oath!”
The ragged young rip
gave a long, low whistle, glanced up and down Jones’s Alley, spat out some
tobacco-juice, and said “Swelp me Gord! I’m sorry, mum. I didn’t know. How was
I to know you wasn’t havin’ me?”
He withdrew one hand
from his pocket and scratched the back of his head, tilting his hat as far
forward as it had previously been to the rear, and just then the dilapidated
side of his right boot attracted his attention. He turned the foot on one side,
and squinted at the sole; then he raised the foot to his left knee, caught the
ankle in a very dirty hand, and regarded the sole-leather critically, as though
calculating how long it would last. After which he spat desperately at the
pavement, and said:
“Kin I see him?”
He followed her up the
crooked little staircase with a who’s-afraid kind of swagger, but he took his
hat off on entering the room.
He glanced round, and
seemed to take stock of the signs of poverty—so familiar to his class—and then
directed his gaze to where the body lay on the sofa with its pauper coffin already
by its side. He looked at the coffin with the critical eye of a tradesman, then
he looked at Arvie, and then at the coffin again, as if calculating whether the
body would fit.
The mother uncovered the
white, pinched face of the dead boy, and Bill came and stood by the sofa. He
carelessly drew his right hand from his pocket, and laid the palm on Arvie’s
ice-cold forehead.
“Poor little cove!” Bill
muttered, half to himself; and then, as though ashamed of his weakness, he
said:
“There wasn’t no post
mortem, was there?”
“No,” she answered; “a
doctor saw him the day before—there was no post mortem.”
“I thought there wasn’t
none,” said Bill, “because a man that’s been post mortemed always looks as if
he’d been hurt. My father looked right enough at first—just as if he was
restin’—but after they’d had him opened he looked as if he’d been hurt. No one
else could see it, but I could. How old was Arvie?”
“Eleven.”’
“I’m twelve—goin’ on for
thirteen. Arvie’s father’s dead, ain’t he?”
“Yes.”
“So’s mine. Died at his
work, didn’t he?”
“Yes.”
“So’d mine. Arvie told
me his father died of something with his heart!”
“Yes.”
“So’d mine; ain’t it
rum? You scrub offices an’ wash, don’t yer?”
“Yes.”
“So does my mother. You
find it pretty hard to get a livin’, don’t yer, these times?”
“My God, yes! God only
knows what I’ll do now my poor boy’s gone. I generally get up at half-past five
to scrub out some offices, and when that’s done I’ve got to start my day’s
work, washing. And then I find it hard to make both ends meet.”
“So does my mother. I
suppose you took on bad when yer husband was brought home?”
“Ah, my God! Yes. I’ll
never forget it till my dying day. My poor husband had been out of work for
weeks, and he only got the job two days before he died. I suppose it gave your
mother a great shock?”
“My oath! One of the
fellows that carried father home said: ‘Yer husband’s dead, mum,’ he says; ‘he
dropped off all of a suddint,’ and mother said, ‘My God! my God!’ just like
that, and went off.”
“Poor soul! poor soul!
And—now my Arvie’s gone. Whatever will me and the children do? Whatever will I
do? Whatever will I do? My God! I wish I was under the turf.”
“Cheer up, mum!” said
Bill. “It’s no use frettin’ over what’s done.”
He wiped some
tobacco-juice off his lips with the back of his hand, and regarded the stains
reflectively for a minute or so. Then he looked at Arvie again.
“You should ha’ tried
cod liver oil,” said Bill.
“No. He needed rest and
plenty of good food.”
“He wasn’t very strong.”
“No, he was not, poor
boy.”
“I thought he wasn’t.
They treated him bad at Grinder Brothers: they didn’t give him a show to learn
nothing; kept him at the same work all the time, and he didn’t have cheek
enough to arsk the boss for a rise, lest he’d be sacked. He couldn’t fight, an’
the boys used to tease him; they’d wait outside the shop to have a lark with
Arvie. I’d like to see ’em do it to me. He couldn’t fight; but then, of course,
he wasn’t strong. They don’t bother me while I’m strong enough to heave a rock;
but then, of course, it wasn’t Arvie’s fault. I s’pose he had pluck enough, if
he hadn’t the strength.” And Bill regarded the corpse with a fatherly and
lenient eye.
“My God!” she cried, “if
I’d known this, I’d sooner have starved than have my poor boy’s life tormented
out of him in such a place. He never complained. My poor, brave-hearted child!
He never complained! Poor little Arvie! Poor little Arvie!”
“He never told yer?”
“No—never a word.”
“My oath! You don’t say
so! P’raps he didn’t want to let you know he couldn’t hold his own; but that
wasn’t his fault, I s’pose. Y’see, he wasn’t strong.”
An old print hanging
over the bed attracted his attention, and he regarded it with critical interest
for awhile:
“We’ve got a pickcher
like that at home. We lived in Jones’s Alley wunst—in that house over there.
How d’yer like livin’ in Jones’s Alley?”
“I don’t like it at all.
I don’t like having to bring my children up where there are so many bad houses;
but I can’t afford to go somewhere else and pay higher rent.”
“Well, there is a
good many night-shops round here. But then,” he added, reflectively, “you’ll
find them everywheres. An’, besides, the kids git sharp, an’ pick up a good
deal in an alley like this; ’twon’t do ’em no harm; it’s no use kids bein’
green if they wanter get on in a city. You ain’t been in Sydney all yer life,
have yer?”
“No. We came from the
bush, about five years ago. My poor husband thought he could do better in the
city. I was brought up in the bush.”’
“I thought yer was.
Well, men are sick fools. I’m thinking about gittin’ a billet up-country,
myself, soon. Where’s he goin’ ter be buried?”
“At Rookwood,
to-morrow.”
“I carn’t come. I’ve got
ter work. Is the Guvmint goin’ to bury him?”
“Yes.”
Bill looked at the body
with increased respect. “Kin I do anythin’ for you? Now, don’t be frightened to
arsk!”
“No. Thank you very
much, all the same.”
“Well, I must be goin’;
thank yer fur yer trouble, mum.”
“No trouble, my boy—mind
the step.”
“It is gone.
I’ll bring a piece of board round some night and mend it for you, if you like;
I’m learnin’ the carpenterin’; I kin nearly make a door. Tell yer what, I’ll
send the old woman round to-night to fix up Arvie and lend yer a hand.”
“No, thank you. I
suppose your mother’s got work and trouble enough; I’ll manage.”
“I’ll send her round,
anyway; she’s a bit rough, but she’s got a soft gizzard; an’ there’s nothin’
she enjoys better than fixin’ up a body. Good-bye, mum.”
“Good-bye, my child.”
He paused at the door,
and said:
“I’m sorry, mum. Swelp
me God! I’m sorry. S’long, an’ thank yer.”
An awe-stricken child
stood on the step, staring at Bill with great brimming eyes. He patted it on
the head and said “Keep yer pecker up, young ’un!”
It was raining—“general
rain.”
The train left Bourke,
and then there began the long, long agony of scrub and wire fence, with here
and there a natural clearing, which seemed even more dismal than the funereal
“timber” itself. The only thing which might seem in keeping with one of these
soddened flats would be the ghost of a funeral—a city funeral with plain hearse
and string of cabs—going very slowly across from the scrub on one side to the
scrub on the other. Sky like a wet, grey blanket; plains like dead seas, save
for the tufts of coarse grass sticking up out of the water; scrub indescribably
dismal—everything damp, dark, and unspeakably dreary.
Somewhere along here we
saw a swagman’s camp—a square of calico stretched across a horizontal stick,
some rags steaming on another stick in front of a fire, and two billies to the
leeward of the blaze. We knew by instinct that there was a piece of beef in the
larger one. Small, hopeless-looking man standing with his back to the fire,
with his hands behind him, watching the train; also, a damp, sorry-looking
dingo warming itself and shivering by the fire. The rain had held up for a
while. We saw two or three similar camps further on, forming a temporary suburb
of Byrock.
The population was on
the platform in old overcoats and damp, soft felt hats; one trooper in a
waterproof. The population looked cheerfully and patiently dismal. The local
push had evidently turned up to see off some fair enslavers from the city, who
had been up-country for the cheque season, now over. They got into another
carriage. We were glad when the bell rang.
The rain recommenced. We
saw another swagman about a mile on struggling away from the town, through mud
and water. He did not seem to have heart enough to bother about trying to avoid
the worst mud-holes. There was a low-spirited dingo at his heels, whose sole
object in life was seemingly to keep his front paws in his master’s last
footprint. The traveller’s body was bent well forward from the hips up; his
long arms—about six inches through his coat sleeves—hung by his sides like the
arms of a dummy, with a billy at the end of one and a bag at the end of the
other; but his head was thrown back against the top end of the swag, his
hat-brim rolled up in front, and we saw a ghastly, beardless face which turned
neither to the right nor the left as the train passed him.
After a long while we
closed our book, and looking through the window, saw a hawker’s turn-out which
was too sorrowful for description.
We looked out again
while the train was going slowly, and saw a teamster’s camp: three or four
wagons covered with tarpaulins which hung down in the mud all round and
suggested death. A long, narrow man, in a long, narrow, shoddy overcoat and a
damp felt hat, was walking quickly along the road past the camp. A sort of
cattle-dog glided silently and swiftly out from under a wagon, “heeled” the man,
and slithered back without explaining. Here the scene vanished.
We remember stopping—for
an age it seemed—at half a dozen straggling shanties on a flat of mud and
water. There was a rotten weather-board pub, with a low, dripping veranda, and
three wretchedly forlorn horses hanging, in the rain, to a post outside. We saw
no more, but we knew that there were several apologies for men hanging about
the rickety bar inside—or round the parlour fire. Streams of cold,
clay-coloured water ran in all directions, cutting fresh gutters, and raising a
yeasty froth whenever the water fell a few inches. As we left, we saw a big man
in an overcoat riding across a culvert; the tails of the coat spread over the
horse’s rump, and almost hid it. In fancy still we saw him—hanging up his
weary, hungry little horse in the rain, and swaggering into the bar; and we
almost heard someone say, in a drawling tone: “’Ello, Tom! ’Ow are yer poppin’
up?”’
The train stopped (for
about a year) within a mile of the next station. Trucking-yards in the
foreground, like any other trucking-yard along the line; they looked drearier
than usual, because the rain had darkened the posts and rails. Small plain
beyond, covered with water and tufts of grass. The inevitable, God-forgotten
“timber,” black in the distance; dull, grey sky and misty rain over all. A
small, dark-looking flock of sheep was crawling slowly in across the flat from
the unknown, with three men on horse-back zigzagging patiently behind. The
horses just moved—that was all. One man wore an oilskin, one an old tweed
overcoat, and the third had a three-bushel bag over his head and shoulders.
Had we returned an hour
later, we should have seen the sheep huddled together in a corner of the yard,
and the three horses hanging up outside the local shanty.
We stayed at
Nyngan—which place we refrain from sketching—for a few hours, because the five
trucks of cattle of which we were in charge were shunted there, to be taken on
by a very subsequent goods train. The Government allows one man to every five
trucks in a cattle-train. We shall pay our fare next time, even if we have not
a shilling left over and above. We had haunted local influence at Comanavadrink
for two long, anxious, heart-breaking weeks ere we got the pass; and we had put
up with all the indignities, the humiliation—in short, had suffered all that
poor devils suffer whilst besieging Local Influence. We only thought of
escaping from the bush.
The pass said that we
were John Smith, drover, and that we were available for return by ordinary
passenger-train within two days, we think—or words in that direction. Which
didn’t interest us. We might have given the pass away to an unemployed in
Orange, who wanted to go out back, and who begged for it with tears in his
eyes; but we didn’t like to injure a poor fool who never injured us—who was an
entire stranger to us. He didn’t know what Out Back meant.
Local Influence had
given us a kind of note of introduction to be delivered to the cattle-agent at
the yards that morning; but the agent was not there—only two of his satellites,
a Cockney colonial-experience man, and a scrub-town clerk, both of whom we
kindly ignore. We got on without the note, and at Orange we amused ourself by
reading it. It said:
“Dear Old Man—Please
send this beggar on; and I hope he’ll be landed safely at Orange—or—or wherever
the cattle go—yours,—-”
We had been led to
believe that the bullocks were going to Sydney. We took no further interest in
those cattle.
After Nyngan the bush
grew darker and drearier; and the plains more like ghastly oceans; and here and
there the “dominant note of Australian scenery” was accentuated, as it were, by
naked, white, ring-barked trees standing in the water and haunting the ghostly
surroundings.
We spent that night in a
passenger compartment of a van which had been originally attached to old No. 1
engine. There was only one damp cushion in the whole concern. We lent that to a
lady who travelled for a few hours in the other half of the next compartment.
The seats were about nine inches wide and sloped in at a sharp angle to the
bare matchboard wall, with a bead on the outer edge; and as the cracks had
become well caulked with the grease and dirt of generations, they held several
gallons of water each. We scuttled one, rolled ourself in a rug, and tried to
sleep; but all night long overcoated and comfortered bushmen would get in, let
down all the windows, and then get out again at the next station. Then we would
wake up frozen and shut the windows.
We dozed off again, and
woke at daylight, and recognized the ridgy gum-country between Dubbo and
Orange. It didn’t look any drearier than the country further west—because it
couldn’t. There is scarcely a part of the country out west which looks less
inviting or more horrible than any other part.
The weather cleared, and
we had sunlight for Orange, Bathurst, the Blue Mountains, and Sydney. They
deserve it; also as much rain as they need.
“Why, there’s two of
them, and they’re having a fight! Come on.”’
It seemed a strange
place for a fight—that hot, lonely, cotton-bush plain. And yet not more than
half a mile ahead there were apparently two men struggling together on the
track.
The three travellers
postponed their smoke-ho and hurried on. They were shearers—a little man and a
big man, known respectively as “Sunlight” and “Macquarie,” and a tall, thin,
young jackeroo whom they called “Milky.”
“I wonder where the
other man sprang from? I didn’t see him before,” said Sunlight.
“He muster bin layin’
down in the bushes,” said Macquarie. “They’re goin’ at it proper, too. Come on!
Hurry up and see the fun!”
They hurried on.
“It’s a funny-lookin’
feller, the other feller,” panted Milky. “He don’t seem to have no head. Look!
he’s down—they’re both down! They must ha’ clinched on the ground. No! they’re
up an’ at it again.... Why, good Lord! I think the other’s a woman!”
“My oath! so it is!”
yelled Sunlight. “Look! the brute’s got her down again! He’s kickin’ her. Come
on, chaps; come on, or he’ll do for her!”
They dropped swags,
water-bags and all, and raced forward; but presently Sunlight, who had the best
eyes, slackened his pace and dropped behind. His mates glanced back at his
face, saw a peculiar expression there, looked ahead again, and then dropped
into a walk.
They reached the scene
of the trouble, and there stood a little withered old man by the track, with
his arms folded close up under his chin; he was dressed mostly in calico
patches; and half a dozen corks, suspended on bits of string from the brim of
his hat, dangled before his bleared optics to scare away the flies. He was
scowling malignantly at a stout, dumpy swag which lay in the middle of the
track.
“Well, old Rats, what’s
the trouble?” asked Sunlight.
“Oh, nothing, nothing,”
answered the old man, without looking round. “I fell out with my swag, that’s
all. He knocked me down, but I’ve settled him.”
“But look here,” said
Sunlight, winking at his mates, “we saw you jump on him when he was down. That
ain’t fair, you know.”
“But you didn’t see it
all,” cried Rats, getting excited. “He hit me down first! And
look here, I’ll fight him again for nothing, and you can see fair play.”
They talked awhile; then
Sunlight proposed to second the swag, while his mate supported the old man, and
after some persuasion, Milky agreed, for the sake of the lark, to act as
time-keeper and referee.
Rats entered into the
spirit of the thing; he stripped to the waist, and while he was getting ready
the travellers pretended to bet on the result.
Macquarie took his place
behind the old man, and Sunlight up-ended the swag. Rats shaped and danced
round; then he rushed, feinted, ducked, retreated, darted in once more, and
suddenly went down like a shot on the broad of his back. No actor could have
done it better; he went down from that imaginary blow as if a cannon-ball had
struck him in the forehead.
Milky called time, and
the old man came up, looking shaky. However, he got in a tremendous blow which
knocked the swag into the bushes.
Several rounds followed
with varying success.
The men pretended to get
more and more excited, and betted freely; and Rats did his best. At last they
got tired of the fun, Sunlight let the swag lie after Milky called time, and
the jackaroo awarded the fight to Rats. They pretended to hand over the stakes,
and then went back for their swags, while the old man put on his shirt.
Then he calmed down,
carried his swag to the side of the track, sat down on it and talked rationally
about bush matters for a while; but presently he grew silent and began to feel
his muscles and smile idiotically.
“Can you len’ us a bit
o’ meat?” said he suddenly.
They spared him half a
pound; but he said he didn’t want it all, and cut off about an ounce, which he
laid on the end of his swag. Then he took the lid off his billy and produced a
fishing-line. He baited the hook, threw the line across the track, and waited
for a bite. Soon he got deeply interested in the line, jerked it once or twice,
and drew it in rapidly. The bait had been rubbed off in the grass. The old man
regarded the hook disgustedly.
“Look at that!” he
cried. “I had him, only I was in such a hurry. I should ha’ played him a little
more.”
Next time he was more
careful. He drew the line in warily, grabbed an imaginary fish and laid it down
on the grass. Sunlight and Co. were greatly interested by this time.
“Wot yer think o’ that?”
asked Rats. “It weighs thirty pound if it weighs an ounce! Wot yer think o’
that for a cod? The hook’s half-way down his blessed gullet!”
He caught several cod
and a bream while they were there, and invited them to camp and have tea with him.
But they wished to reach a certain shed next day, so—after the ancient had
borrowed about a pound of meat for bait—they went on, and left him fishing
contentedly.
But first Sunlight went
down into his pocket and came up with half a crown, which he gave to the old
man, along with some tucker. “You’d best push on to the water before dark, old
chap,” he said, kindly.
When they turned their
heads again, Rats was still fishing but when they looked back for the last time
before entering the timber, he was having another row with his swag; and
Sunlight reckoned that the trouble arose out of some lies which the swag had
been telling about the bigger fish it caught.
It was a very mean
station, and Mitchell thought he had better go himself and beard the overseer
for tucker. His mates were for waiting till the overseer went out on the run,
and then trying their luck with the cook; but the self-assertive and diplomatic
Mitchell decided to go.
“Good day,” said
Mitchell.
“Good day,” said the
manager.
“It’s hot,” said
Mitchell.
“Yes, it’s hot.”
“I don’t suppose,” said
Mitchell; “I don’t suppose it’s any use asking you for a job?”
“Naw.”
“Well, I won’t ask you,”
said Mitchell, “but I don’t suppose you want any fencing done?”
“Naw.”
“Nor boundary-riding’?”
“Naw.”
“You ain’t likely to
want a man to knock round?”
“Naw.”
“I thought not. Things
are pretty bad just now.”
“Na—yes—they are.”
“Ah, well; there’s a lot
to be said on the squatter’s side as well as the men’s. I suppose I can get a
bit of rations?”
“Ye-yes.” (Shortly)—“Wot
d’yer want?”
“Well, let’s see; we
want a bit of meat and flour—I think that’s all. Got enough tea and sugar to
carry us on.”
“All right. Cook! have
you got any meat?”
“No!”
To Mitchell: “Can you
kill a sheep?”
“Rather!”
To the cook: “Give this
man a cloth and knife and steel, and let him go up to the yard and kill a
sheep.” (To Mitchell) “You can take a fore-quarter and get a bit of flour.”
Half an hour later
Mitchell came back with the carcass wrapped in the cloth.
“Here yer are; here’s
your sheep,” he said to the cook. “That’s all right; hang it in there. Did you
take a forequarter?”’
“No.”
“Well, why didn’t you?
The boss told you to.”
“I didn’t want a
fore-quarter. I don’t like it. I took a hind-quarter.”
So he had.
The cook scratched his
head; he seemed to have nothing to say. He thought about trying to think,
perhaps, but gave it best. It was too hot and he was out of practice.
“Here, fill these up,
will you?” said Mitchell. “That’s the tea-bag, and that’s the sugar-bag, and
that’s the flour-bag.” He had taken them from the front of his shirt.
“Don’t be frightened to
stretch ’em a little, old man. I’ve got two mates to feed.”
The cook took the bags
mechanically and filled them well before he knew what he was doing. Mitchell
talked all the time.
“Thank you,” said
he—“got a bit of baking-powder?”
“Ye-yes, here you are.”
“Thank you. Find it dull
here, don’t you?”
“Well, yes, pretty dull.
There’s a bit of cooked beef and some bread and cake there, if you want it!”
“Thanks,” said Mitchell,
sweeping the broken victuals into an old pillow-slip which he carried on his
person for such an emergency. “I s’pose you find it dull round here.”
“Yes, pretty dull.”
“No one to talk to
much?” “No, not many.”
“Tongue gets rusty?”
“Ye—es, sometimes.”
“Well, so long, and
thank yer.”
“So long,” said the cook
(he nearly added “thank yer”).
“Well, good day; I’ll
see you again.”
“Good day.”
Mitchell shouldered his
spoil and left.
The cook scratched his
head; he had a chat with the overseer afterwards, and they agreed that the
traveller was a bit gone.
But Mitchell’s head
wasn’t gone—not much: he had been round a bit—that was all.
“Five Bob!”
The old man shaded his
eyes and peered through the dazzling glow of that broiling Christmas Day. He
stood just within the door of a slab-and-bark hut situated upon the bank of a
barren creek; sheep-yards lay to the right, and a low line of bare, brown
ridges formed a suitable background to the scene.
“Five Bob!” shouted he
again; and a dusty sheep-dog rose wearily from the shaded side of the but and
looked inquiringly at his master, who pointed towards some sheep which were
straggling from the flock.
“Fetch ’em back,” he
said confidently.
The dog went off, and
his master returned to the interior of the hut.
“We’ll yard ’em early,”
he said to himself; “the super won’t know. We’ll yard ’em early, and have the
arternoon to ourselves.”
“We’ll get dinner,” he
added, glancing at some pots on the fire. “I cud do a bit of doughboy, an’ that
theer boggabri’ll eat like tater-marrer along of the salt meat.” He moved one
of the black buckets from the blaze. “I likes to keep it jist on the sizzle,”
he said in explanation to himself; “hard bilin’ makes it tough—I’ll keep it
jist a-simmerin’.”
Here his soliloquy was
interrupted by the return of the dog.
“All right, Five Bob,”
said the hatter, “dinner’ll be ready dreckly. Jist keep yer eye on the sheep
till I calls yer; keep ’em well rounded up, an’ we’ll yard ’em afterwards and
have a holiday.”
This speech was accompanied
by a gesture evidently intelligible, for the dog retired as though he
understood English, and the cooking proceeded.
“I’ll take a pick an’
shovel with me an’ root up that old blackfellow,” mused the shepherd, evidently
following up a recent train of thought; “I reckon it’ll do now. I’ll put in the
spuds.”
The last sentence
referred to the cooking, the first to a blackfellow’s grave about which he was
curious.
“The sheep’s a-campin’,”
said the soliloquizer, glancing through the door. “So me an’ Five Bob’ll be
able to get our dinner in peace. I wish I had just enough fat to make the pan
siss; I’d treat myself to a leather-jacket; but it took three weeks’ skimmin’
to get enough for them theer doughboys.”
In due time the dinner
was dished up; and the old man seated himself on a block, with the lid of a
gin-case across his knees for a table. Five Bob squatted opposite with the
liveliest interest and appreciation depicted on his intelligent countenance.
Dinner proceeded very
quietly, except when the carver paused to ask the dog how some tasty morsel
went with him, and Five Bob’s tail declared that it went very well indeed.
“Here y’are, try this,”
cried the old man, tossing him a large piece of doughboy. A click of Five Bob’s
jaws and the dough was gone.
“Clean into his liver!”
said the old man with a faint smile. He washed up the tinware in the water the
duff had been boiled in, and then, with the assistance of the dog, yarded the
sheep.
This accomplished, he
took a pick and shovel and an old sack, and started out over the ridge,
followed, of course, by his four-legged mate. After tramping some three miles
he reached a spur, running out from the main ridge. At the extreme end of this,
under some gum-trees, was a little mound of earth, barely defined in the grass,
and indented in the centre as all blackfellows’ graves were.
He set to work to dig it
up, and sure enough, in about half an hour he bottomed on payable dirt.
When he had raked up all
the bones, he amused himself by putting them together on the grass and by
speculating as to whether they had belonged to black or white, male or female.
Failing, however, to arrive at any satisfactory conclusion, he dusted them with
great care, put them in the bag, and started for home.
He took a short cut this
time over the ridge and down a gully which was full of ring-barked trees and
long white grass. He had nearly reached its mouth when a great greasy black
goanna clambered up a sapling from under his feet and looked fightable.
“Dang the jumpt-up
thing!” cried the old man. “It ’gin me a start!”
At the foot of the
sapling he espied an object which he at first thought was the blackened carcass
of a sheep, but on closer examination discovered to be the body of a man; it
lay with its forehead resting on its hands, dried to a mummy by the intense
heat of the western summer.
“Me luck’s in for the
day and no mistake!” said the shepherd, scratching the back of his head, while
he took stock of the remains. He picked up a stick and tapped the body on the
shoulder; the flesh sounded like leather. He turned it over on its side; it
fell flat on its back like a board, and the shrivelled eyes seemed to peer up
at him from under the blackened wrists.
He stepped back
involuntarily, but, recovering himself, leant on his stick and took in all the
ghastly details.
There was nothing in the
blackened features to tell aught of name or race, but the dress proclaimed the
remains to be those of a European. The old man caught sight of a black bottle
in the grass, close beside the corpse. This set him thinking. Presently he
knelt down and examined the soles of the dead man’s blucher boots, and then,
rising with an air of conviction, exclaimed: “Brummy! by gosh!—busted up at
last!
“I tole yer so, Brummy,”
he said impressively, addressing the corpse. “I allers told yer as how it ’ud
be—an’ here y’are, you thundering jumpt-up cuss-o’-God fool. Yer cud earn
more’n any man in the colony, but yer’d lush it all away. I allers sed as how
it ’ud end, an’ now yer kin see fur y’self.
“I spect yer was
a-comin’ t’ me t’ get fixt up an’ set straight agin; then yer was a-goin’ to
swear off, same as yer ’allers did; an’ here y’are, an’ now I expect I’ll have
t’ fix yer up for the last time an’ make yer decent, for ’twon’t do t’ leave
yer alyin’ out here like a dead sheep.”
He picked up the corked
bottle and examined it. To his great surprise it was nearly full of rum.
“Well, this gits me,”
exclaimed the old man; “me luck’s in, this Christmas, an’ no mistake. He must
’a’ got the jams early in his spree, or he wouldn’t be a-making for me with
near a bottleful left. Howsomenever, here goes.”
Looking round, his eyes
lit up with satisfaction as he saw some bits of bark which had been left by a
party of strippers who had been getting bark there for the stations. He picked
up two pieces, one about four and the other six feet long, and each about two
feet wide, and brought them over to the body. He laid the longest strip by the
side of the corpse, which he proceeded to lift on to it.
“Come on, Brummy,” he
said, in a softer tone than usual, “ye ain’t as bad as yer might be,
considerin’ as it must be three good months since yer slipped yer wind. I spect
it was the rum as preserved yer. It was the death of yer when yer was alive,
an’ now yer dead, it preserves yer like—like a mummy.”
Then he placed the other
strip on top, with the hollow side downwards—thus sandwiching the defunct
between the two pieces—removed the saddle-strap, which he wore for a belt, and
buckled it round one end, while he tried to think of something with which to tie
up the other.
“I can’t take any more
strips off my shirt,” he said, critically examining the skirts of the old blue
overshirt he wore. “I might get a strip or two more off, but it’s short enough
already. Let’s see; how long have I been a-wearin’ of that shirt; oh, I
remember, I bought it jist two days afore Five Bob was pupped. I can’t afford a
new shirt jist yet; howsomenever, seein’ it’s Brummy, I’ll jist borrow a couple
more strips and sew ’em on agen when I git home.”
He up-ended Brummy, and
placing his shoulder against the middle of the lower sheet of bark, lifted the
corpse to a horizontal position; then, taking the bag of bones in his hand, he
started for home.
“I ain’t a-spendin’ sech
a dull Christmas arter all,” he reflected, as he plodded on; but he had not
walked above a hundred yards when he saw a black goanna sidling into the grass.
“That’s another of them
theer dang things!” he exclaimed. “That’s two I’ve seed this mornin’.”
Presently he remarked:
“Yer don’t smell none too sweet, Brummy. It must ’a’ been jist about the middle
of shearin’ when yer pegged out. I wonder who got yer last cheque. Shoo!
theer’s another black goanner—theer must be a flock of ’em.”
He rested Brummy on the
ground while he had another pull at the bottle, and, before going on, packed
the bag of bones on his shoulder under the body, and he soon stopped again.
“The thunderin’ jumpt-up
bones is all skew-whift,” he said. “’Ole on, Brummy, an’ I’ll fix ’em”—and he
leaned the dead man against a tree while he settled the bones on his shoulder,
and took another pull at the bottle.
About a mile further on
he heard a rustling in the grass to the right, and, looking round, saw another
goanna gliding off sideways, with its long snaky neck turned towards him.
This puzzled the
shepherd considerably, the strangest part of it being that Five Bob wouldn’t
touch the reptile, but slunk off with his tail down when ordered to “sick ’em.”
“Theer’s sothin’ comic
about them theer goanners,” said the old man at last. “I’ve seed swarms of
grasshoppers an’ big mobs of kangaroos, but dang me if ever I seed a flock of
black goanners afore!”
On reaching the hut the
old man dumped the corpse against the wall, wrong end up, and stood scratching
his head while he endeavoured to collect his muddled thoughts; but he had not
placed Brummy at the correct angle, and, consequently, that individual fell
forward and struck him a violent blow on the shoulder with the iron toes of his
blucher boots.
The shock sobered him.
He sprang a good yard, instinctively hitching up his moleskins in preparation
for flight; but a backward glance revealed to him the true cause of this
supposed attack from the rear. Then he lifted the body, stood it on its feet
against the chimney, and ruminated as to where he should lodge his mate for the
night, not noticing that the shorter sheet of bark had slipped down on the
boots and left the face exposed.
“I spect I’ll have ter
put yer into the chimney-trough for the night, Brummy,” said he, turning round
to confront the corpse. “Yer can’t expect me to take yer into the hut, though I
did it when yer was in a worse state than—Lord!”
The shepherd was not
prepared for the awful scrutiny that gleamed on him from those empty sockets;
his nerves received a shock, and it was some time before he recovered himself
sufficiently to speak.
“Now, look a-here,
Brummy,” said he, shaking his finger severely at the delinquent, “I don’t want
to pick a row with yer; I’d do as much for yer an’ more than any other man, an’
well yer knows it; but if yer starts playin’ any of yer jumpt-up pranktical
jokes on me, and a-scarin’ of me after a-humpin’ of yer ’ome, by the ’oly frost
I’ll kick yer to jim-rags, so I will.”
This admonition
delivered, he hoisted Brummy into the chimney-trough, and with a last glance
towards the sheep-yards, he retired to his bunk to have, as he said, a snooze.
He had more than a
snooze, however, for when he woke, it was dark, and the bushman’s instinct told
him it must be nearly nine o’clock.
He lit a slush-lamp and
poured the remainder of the rum into a pannikin; but, just as he was about to
lift the draught to his lips, he heard a peculiar rustling sound overhead, and
put the pot down on the table with a slam that spilled some of the precious
liquor.
Five Bob whimpered, and
the old shepherd, though used to the weird and dismal, as one living alone in
the bush must necessarily be, felt the icy breath of fear at his heart.
He reached hastily for
his old shot-gun, and went out to investigate. He walked round the but several
times and examined the roof on all sides, but saw nothing. Brummy appeared to
be in the same position.
At last, persuading
himself that the noise was caused by possums or the wind, the old man went
inside, boiled his billy, and, after composing his nerves somewhat with a light
supper and a meditative smoke, retired for the night. He was aroused several
times before midnight by the same mysterious sound overhead, but, though he
rose and examined the roof on each occasion by the light of the rising moon, he
discovered nothing.
At last he determined to
sit up and watch until daybreak, and for this purpose took up a position on a
log a short distance from the hut, with his gun laid in readiness across his
knee.
After watching for about
an hour, he saw a black object coming over the ridge-pole. He grabbed his gun
and fired. The thing disappeared. He ran round to the other side of the hut,
and there was a great black goanna in violent convulsions on the ground.
Then the old man saw it
all. “The thunderin’ jumpt-up thing has been a-havin’ o’ me,” he exclaimed.
“The same cuss-o’-God wretch has a-follered me ’ome, an’ has been a-havin’ its
Christmas dinner off of Brummy, an’ a-hauntin’ o’ me into the bargain, the
jumpt-up tinker!”
As there was no one by
whom he could send a message to the station, and the old man dared not leave
the sheep and go himself, he determined to bury the body the next afternoon,
reflecting that the authorities could disinter it for inquest if they pleased.
So he brought the sheep
home early and made arrangements for the burial by measuring the outer casing
of Brummy and digging a hole according to those dimensions.
“That ’minds me,” he
said. “I never rightly knowed Brummy’s religion, blest if ever I did.
Howsomenever, there’s one thing sartin—none o’ them theer pianer-fingered
parsons is a-goin’ ter take the trouble ter travel out inter this God-forgotten
part to hold sarvice over him, seein’ as how his last cheque’s blued. But, as
I’ve got the fun’ral arrangements all in me own hands, I’ll do jestice to it,
and see that Brummy has a good comfortable buryin’—and more’s unpossible.”
“It’s time yer turned
in, Brum,” he said, lifting the body down.
He carried it to the
grave and dropped it into one corner like a post. He arranged the bark so as to
cover the face, and, by means of a piece of clothes-line, lowered the body to a
horizontal position. Then he threw in an armful of gum-leaves, and then, very
reluctantly, took the shovel and dropped in a few shovelfuls of earth.
“An’ this is the last of
Brummy,” he said, leaning on his spade and looking away over the tops of the
ragged gums on the distant range.
This reflection seemed
to engender a flood of memories, in which the old man became absorbed. He
leaned heavily upon his spade and thought.
“Arter all,” he murmured
sadly, “arter all—it were Brummy.
“Brummy,” he said at
last. “It’s all over now; nothin’ matters now—nothin’ didn’t ever matter,
nor—nor don’t. You uster say as how it ’ud be all right termorrer” (pause);
“termorrer’s come, Brummy—come fur you—it ain’t come fur me yet, but—it’s
a-comin’.”
He threw in some more
earth.
“Yer don’t remember,
Brummy, an’ mebbe yer don’t want to remember—I don’t want to
remember—but—well, but, yer see that’s where yer got the pull on me.”
He shovelled in some
more earth and paused again.
The dog rose, with ears
erect, and looked anxiously first at his master and then into the grave.
“Theer oughter be
somethin’ sed,” muttered the old man; “’tain’t right to put ’im under like a
dog. Theer oughter be some sort o’ sarmin.” He sighed heavily in the listening
silence that followed this remark and proceeded with his work. He filled the
grave to the brim this time, and fashioned the mound carefully with his spade.
Once or twice he muttered the words, “I am the rassaraction.” As he laid the
tools quietly aside, and stood at the head of the grave, he was evidently
trying to remember the something that ought to be said. He removed his hat,
placed it carefully on the grass, held his hands out from his sides and a
little to the front, drew a long deep breath, and said with a solemnity that
greatly disturbed Five Bob: “Hashes ter hashes, dus ter dus, Brummy—an’—an’ in
hopes of a great an’ gerlorious rassaraction!”
He sat down on a log
near by, rested his elbows on his knees and passed his hand wearily over his
forehead—but only as one who was tired and felt the heat; and presently he
rose, took up the tools, and walked back to the hut.
And the sun sank again
on the grand Australian bush—the nurse and tutor of eccentric minds, the home
of the weird.
The moon rose away out
on the edge of a smoky plain, seen through a sort of tunnel or arch in the
fringe of mulga behind which we were camped—Jack Mitchell and I. The timber
proper was just behind us, very thick and very dark. The moon looked like a big
new copper boiler set on edge on the horizon of the plain, with the top turned
towards us and a lot of old rags and straw burning inside.
We had tramped
twenty-five miles on a dry stretch on a hot day—swagmen know what that means.
We reached the water about two hours “after dark “—swagmen know what that
means. We didn’t sit down at once and rest—we hadn’t rested for the last ten
miles. We knew that if we sat down we wouldn’t want to get up again in a
hurry—that, if we did, our leg-sinews, especially those of our calves, would
“draw” like red-hot wire’s. You see, we hadn’t been long on the track this
time—it was only our third day out. Swagmen will understand.
We got the billy boiled
first, and some leaves laid down for our beds and the swags rolled out. We thanked
the Lord that we had some cooked meat and a few johnny-cakes left, for we
didn’t feel equal to cooking. We put the billy of tea and our tucker-bags
between the heads of our beds, and the pipes and tobacco in the crown of an old
hat, where we could reach them without having to get up. Then we lay down on
our stomachs and had a feed. We didn’t eat much—we were too tired for that—but
we drank a lot of tea. We gave our calves time to tone down a bit; then we lit
up and began to answer each other. It got to be pretty comfortable, so long as
we kept those unfortunate legs of ours straight and didn’t move round much.
We cursed society
because we weren’t rich men, and then we felt better and conversation drifted
lazily round various subjects and ended in that of smoking.
“How came to start
smoking?” said Mitchell. “Let’s see.” He reflected. “I started smoking first
when I was about fourteen or fifteen. I smoked some sort of weed—I forget the
name of it—but it wasn’t tobacco; and then I smoked cigarettes—not the ones we
get now, for those cost a penny each. Then I reckoned that, if I could smoke
those, I could smoke a pipe.”
He reflected.
“We lived in Sydney
then—Surry Hills. Those were different times; the place was nearly all sand.
The old folks were alive then, and we were all at home, except Tom.”
He reflected.
“Ah, well!... Well, one
evening I was playing marbles out in front of our house when a chap we knew
gave me his pipe to mind while he went into a church-meeting. The little church
was opposite—a ‘chapel’ they called it.”
He reflected.
“The pipe was alight. It
was a clay pipe and niggerhead tobacco. Mother was at work out in the kitchen
at the back, washing up the tea-things, and, when I went in, she said: ‘You’ve
been smoking!’
“Well, I couldn’t deny
it—I was too sick to do so, or care much, anyway.
“‘Give me that pipe!’
she said.
“I said I hadn’t got it.
“‘Give—me—that—pipe!’
she said.
“I said I hadn’t got it.
“‘Where is it?’ she
said.
“‘Jim Brown’s got it,’ I
said, ‘it’s his.’
“‘Then I’ll give it to
Jim Brown,’ she said; and she did; though it wasn’t Jim’s fault, for he only
gave it to me to mind. I didn’t smoke the pipe so much because I wanted to
smoke a pipe just then, as because I had such a great admiration for Jim.”
Mitchell reflected, and
took a look at the moon. It had risen clear and had got small and cold and
pure-looking, and had floated away back out amongst the stars.
“I felt better towards
morning, but it didn’t cure me—being sick and nearly dead all night, I mean. I
got a clay pipe and tobacco, and the old lady found it and put it in the stove.
Then I got another pipe and tobacco, and she laid for it, and found it out at
last; but she didn’t put the tobacco in the stove this time—she’d got
experience. I don’t know what she did with it. I tried to find it, but
couldn’t. I fancy the old man got hold of it, for I saw him with a plug that
looked very much like mine.”
He reflected.
“But I wouldn’t be done.
I got a cherry pipe. I thought it wouldn’t be so easy to break if she found it.
I used to plant the bowl in one place and the stem in another because I
reckoned that if she found one she mightn’t find the other. It doesn’t look
much of an idea now, but it seemed like an inspiration then. Kids get rum
ideas.”
He reflected.
“Well, one day I was
having a smoke out at the back, when I heard her coming, and I pulled out the
stem in a hurry and put the bowl behind the water-butt and the stem under the
house. Mother was coming round for a dipper of water. I got out of her way
quick, for I hadn’t time to look innocent; but the bowl of the pipe was hot and
she got a whiff of it. She went sniffing round, first on one side of the cask
and then on the other, until she got on the scent and followed it up and found
the bowl. Then I had only the stem left. She looked for that, but she couldn’t
scent it. But I couldn’t get much comfort out of that. Have you got the
matches?
“Then I gave it best for
a time and smoked cigars. They were the safest and most satisfactory under the
circumstances, but they cost me two shillings a week, and I couldn’t stand it,
so I started a pipe again and then mother gave in at last. God bless her, and
God forgive me, and us all—we deserve it. She’s been at rest these seventeen
long years.”
Mitchell reflected.
“And what did your old
man do when he found out that you were smoking?” I asked.
“The old man?”
He reflected.
“Well, he seemed to
brighten up at first. You see, he was sort of pensioned off by mother and she
kept him pretty well inside his income.... Well, he seemed to sort of brighten
up—liven up—when he found out that I was smoking.”
“Did he? So did my old
man, and he livened me up, too. But what did your old man do—what did he say?”
“Well,” said Mitchell,
very slowly, “about the first thing he did was to ask me for a fill.”
He reflected.
“Ah! many a solemn,
thoughtful old smoke we had together on the quiet—the old man and me.”
He reflected.
“Is your old man dead,
Mitchell?” I asked softly. “Long ago—these twelve years,” said Mitchell.
We were delayed for an
hour or so inside Sydney Heads, taking passengers from the Oroya,
which had just arrived from England and anchored off Watson’s Bay. An Adelaide
boat went alongside the ocean liner, while we dropped anchor at a respectable
distance. This puzzled some of us until one of the passengers stopped an
ancient mariner and inquired. The sailor jerked his thumb upwards, and left.
The passengers stared aloft till some of them got the lockjaw in the back of
their necks, and then another sailor suggested that we had yards to our masts,
while the Adelaide boat had not.
It seemed a pity that
the new chums for New Zealand didn’t have a chance to see Sydney after coming
so far and getting so near. It struck them that way too. They saw Melbourne,
which seemed another injustice to the old city. However, nothing matters much
nowadays, and they might see Sydney in happier times.
They looked like new
chums, especially the “furst clarsters,” and there were two or three Scotsmen
among them who looked like Scots, and talked like it too; also an Irishman.
Great Britain and Ireland do not seem to be learning anything fresh about
Australia. We had a yarn with one of these new arrivals, and got talking about
the banks. It turned out that he was a radical. He spat over the side and said:
“It’s a something shame
the way things is carried on! Now, look here, a banker can rob hundreds of
wimmin and children an’ widders and orfuns, and nothin’ is done to him; but if
a poor man only embezzles a shilling he gets transported to the
colonies for life.” The italics are ours, but the words were his.
We explained to this new
chum that transportation was done away with long ago, as far as Australia was
concerned, that no more convicts were sent out here—only men who ought to be;
and he seemed surprised. He did not call us a liar, but he looked as if he
thought that we were prevaricating. We were glad that he didn’t say so, for he
was a bigger man. New chums are generally more robust than Australians.
When we got through the
Heads someone pointed to the wrong part of the cliff and said:
“That’s where the Dunbar was
wrecked.”
Shortly afterwards
another man pointed to another wrong part of the cliffs and observed
incidentally:
“That’s where the Dunbar was
wrecked.”
Pretty soon a third man
came along and pointed to a third wrong part of the cliff, and remarked
casually:
“That’s where the Dunbar was
wrecked.”
We moved aft and met the
fourth mate, who jerked his thumb over his shoulder at the cliffs in general,
and muttered condescendingly:
“That’s where the Dunbar was
wrecked.”
It was not long before a
woman turned round and asked “Was that the place where the Dunbar was wrecked,
please?”
We said “Yes,” and she
said “Lor,” and beckoned to a friend.
We went for’ard and met
an old sailor, who glared at us, jerked his thumb at the coast and growled:
“That’s where the Dunbar went
down.”
Then we went below; but
we felt a slight relief when he said “went down” instead of “was wrecked.”
It is doubtful whether a
passenger boat ever cleared Sydney Heads since the wild night of that famous
wreck without someone pointing to the wrong part of the cliffs, and remarking:
“That’s where the Dunbar was
wrecked.”
The Dunbar fiend
is inseparable from Australian coasting steamers.
We travelled
second-class in the interests of journalism. You get more points for copy in
the steerage. It was a sacrifice; but we hope to profit by it some day.
There were about fifty
male passengers, including half a dozen New Zealand shearers, two of whom came
on board drunk—their remarks for the first night mainly consisted of “gory.”
“Gory” is part of the Australian language now—a big part.
The others were chiefly
tradesmen, labourers, clerks and bagmen, driven out of Australia by the hard
times there, and glad, no doubt, to get away. There was a jeweller on board, of
course, and his name was Moses or Cohen. If it wasn’t it should have been—or
Isaacs. His christian name was probably Benjamin. We called him Jacobs. He
passed away most of his time on board in swopping watch lies with the other
passengers and good-naturedly spoiling their Waterburys.
One commercial traveller
shipped with a flower in his buttonhole. His girl gave it to him on the wharf,
and told him to keep it till it faded, and then press it. She was a barmaid.
She thought he was “going saloon,” but he came forward as soon as the wharf was
out of sight. He gave the flower to the stewardess, and told us about these
things one moonlight night during the voyage.
There was another—a
well-known Sydney man—whose friends thought he was going saloon, and turned up
in good force to see him off. He spent his last shilling “shouting,” and kept
up his end of the pathetic little farce out of consideration for the feelings
of certain proud female relatives, and not because he was “proud”—at least in
that way. He stood on a conspicuous part of the saloon deck and waved his white
handkerchief until Miller’s Point came between. Then he came forward where he
belonged. But he was proud—bitterly so. He had a flower too, but he did not
give it to the stewardess. He had it pressed, we think (for we knew him), and
perhaps he wears it now over the place where his heart used to be.
When Australia was
fading from view we shed a tear, which was all we had to shed; at least, we
tried to shed a tear, and could not. It is best to be exact when you are
writing from experience.
Just as Australia was
fading from view, someone looked through a glass, and said in a sad, tired kind
of voice that he could just see the place where the Dunbar was
wrecked.
Several passengers were
leaning about and saying “Europe! E-u-rope!” in agonized tones. None of them
were going to Europe, and the new chums said nothing about it. This reminds us
that some people say “Asia! Asia! Ak-kak-Asia!” when somebody spills the
pepper. There was a pepper-box without a stopper on the table in our cabin. The
fact soon attracted attention.
A new chum came along
and asked us whether the Maoris were very bad round Sydney. He’d heard that
they were. We told him that we had never had any trouble with them to speak of,
and gave him another show.
“Did you ever hear of
the wreck of the Dunbar?” we asked. He said that he never “heerd
tell” of it, but he had heerd of the wreck of the Victoria.
We gave him best.
The first evening passed
off quietly, except for the vinously-excited shearers. They had sworn eternal
friendship with a convivial dude from the saloon, and he made a fine specimen
fool of himself for an hour or so. He never showed his nose for’ard again.
Now and then a passenger
would solemnly seek the steward and have a beer. The steward drew it out of a
small keg which lay on its side on a shelf with a wooden tap sticking out of
the end of it—out of the end of the keg, we mean. The beer tasted like warm but
weak vinegar, and cost sixpence per small glass. The bagman told the steward
that he could not compliment him on the quality of his liquor, but the steward
said nothing. He did not even seem interested—only bored. He had heard the same
remark often before, no doubt. He was a fat, solemn steward—not formal, but
very reticent—unresponsive. He looked like a man who had conducted a religious
conservative paper once and failed, and had then gone into the wholesale
produce line, and failed again, and finally got his present billet through the
influence of his creditors and two clergymen. He might have been a sociable
fellow, a man about town, even a gay young dog, and a radical writer before he
was driven to accept the editorship of the aforesaid periodical. He probably
came of a “good English family.” He was now, very likely, either a rigid
Presbyterian or an extreme freethinker. He thought a lot, anyway, and looked as
if he knew a lot too—too much for words, in fact.
We took a turn on deck
before turning in, and heard two men arguing about the way in which the Dunbar was
wrecked.
The commercial
travellers, the jeweller, and one or two new chums who were well provided with
clothing undressed deliberately and retired ostentatiously in pyjamas, but
there were others—men of better days—who turned in either very early or very
late, when the cabin was quiet, and slipped hurriedly and furtively out of
their clothes and between the blankets, as if they were ashamed of the poverty
of their underwear. It is well that the Lord can see deep down into the hearts
of men, for He has to judge them; it is well that the majority of mankind
cannot, because, if they could, the world would be altogether too sorrowful to
live in; and we do not think the angels can either, else they would not be
happy—if they could and were they would not be angels any longer—they would be
devils. Study it out on a slate.
We turned in feeling
comfortably dismal, and almost wishing that we had gone down with the Dunbar.
The intoxicated shearers
and the dude kept their concert up till a late hour that night—or, rather, a
very early hour next morning; and at about midnight they were reinforced by the
commercial traveller and Moses, the jeweller, who had been visiting
acquaintances aft. This push was encouraged by voices from various bunks, and
enthusiastically barracked for by a sandy-complexioned, red-headed comedian
with twinkling grey eyes, who occupied the berth immediately above our own.
They stood with their
backs to the bunks, and their feet braced against the deck, or lurched round,
and took friendly pulls from whisky flasks, and chyacked each other, and
laughed, and blowed, and lied like—like Australian bushmen; and occasionally
they broke out into snatches of song—and as often broke down. Few Englishmen
know more than the first verse, or two lines, of even their most popular song,
and, where elevated enough to think they can sing, they repeat the first verse
over and over again, with the wrong words, and with a sort of
“Ta-ra-ra-rum-ti-tooral, ta-ra-ra-ra-ra-rum-ti,
ta-ra-ra-rum-tum-ti-rum-rum-tum-ti-dee-e-e,” by way of variation.
Presently—suddenly, it
seemed to our drowsy senses—two of the shearers and the bagman commenced
arguing with drunken gravity and precision about politics, even while a third
bushman was approaching the climax of an out-back yarn of many adjectives, of
which he himself was the hero. The scraps of conversation that we caught were
somewhat as follow. We leave out most of the adjectives.
First Voice: “Now, look
here. The women will vote for men, not principles. That’s why I’m against women
voting. Now, just mark my—-”
Third Voice (trying to
finish yarn): “Hold on. Just wait till I tell yer. Well, this bloomin’ bloke,
he says—-”
Second Voice (evidently
in reply to first): “Principles you mean, not men. You’re getting a bit mixed,
old man.” (Smothered chuckle from comedian over our head.)
Third Voice (seeming to
drift round in search of sympathy): “‘You will!’ sez I. ‘Yes, I will,’ he sez.
‘Oh, you will, will yer?’ I sez; and with that I—-”
Second Voice (apparently
wandering from both subjects) “Blanker has always stuck up for the workin’ man,
an’ he’ll get in, you’ll see. Why, he’s a bloomin’ workin’ man himself. Me and
Blanker—-”
Disgusted voice from a
bunk: “Oh, that’s damn rot! We’ve had enough of lumpers in parliament! Horny
hands are all right enough, but we don’t want any more blanky horny heads!”
Third Voice
(threateningly): “Who’s talkin’ about ’orny heads? That pitch is meant for us,
ain’t it? Do you mean to say that I’ve got a ’orny head?”
Here two men commenced
snarling at each other, and there was some talk of punching the causes of the
dispute; but the bagman interfered, a fresh flask was passed round, and some
more eternal friendship sworn to.
We dozed off again, and
the next time we were aware of anything the commercial and Moses had disappeared,
the rest were lying or sitting in their bunks, and the third shearer was
telling a yarn about an alleged fight he had at a shed up-country; and perhaps
he was telling it for the benefit of the dissatisfied individual who made the
injudicious remark concerning horny heads.
“So I said to the
boss-over-the-board, ‘you’re a nice sort of a thing,’ I sez. ‘Who are you
talkin’ to?’ he says. ‘You, bless yer,’ I says. ‘Now, look here,’ he says, ‘you
get your cheque and clear! ‘All right,’ I says, ‘you can take that!’ and I
hauled off and landed him a beauty under the butt of the listener. Then the
boss came along with two blacklegs, but the boys made a ring, and I laid out
the blanks in just five minutes. Then I sez to the boss, ‘That’s the sort of
cove I am,’ I sez, ‘an’ now, if you—-”
But just here there came
a deep, growling voice—seemingly from out of the depths of the forehold—anyway,
there came a voice, and it said:
“For the Lord’s sake
give her a rest!”
The steward turned off
the electricity, but there were two lanterns dimly burning in our part of the
steerage. It was a narrow compartment running across the width of the boat, and
had evidently been partitioned off from the top floor of the hold to meet the
emigration from Australia to New Zealand. There were three tiers of bunks, two
deep, on the far side, three rows of single bunks on the other, and two at each
end of the cabin, the top ones just under the portholes.
The shearers had turned
in “all standing;” two of them were lying feet to feet in a couple of outside
lower berths. One lay on his stomach with his face turned outwards, his arm
thrown over the side of the bunk, and his knuckles resting on the deck, the
other rested on the broad of his back with his arm also hanging over the side
and his knuckles resting on the floor. And so they slept the sleep of the
drunk.
A fair, girl-faced young
Swiss emigrant occupied one of the top berths, with his curly, flaxen head
resting close alongside one of the lanterns that were dimly burning, and an
Anglo-foreign dictionary in his hand. His mate, or brother, who resembled him
in everything except that he had dark hair, lay asleep alongside; and in the
next berth a long consumptive-looking new chum sat in his pyjamas, with his
legs hanging over the edge, and his hands grasping the sideboard, to which, on
his right hand, a sort of tin-can arrangement was hooked. He was staring
intently at nothing, and seemed to be thinking very hard.
We dozed off again, and
woke suddenly to find our eyes wide open, and the young Swiss still studying,
and the jackaroo still sitting in the same position, but with a kind of waiting
expression on his face—a sort of expectant light in his eyes. Suddenly he
lurched for the can, and after awhile he lay back looking like a corpse.
We slept again, and
finally awoke to daylight and the clatter of plates. All the bunks were vacated
except two, which contained corpses, apparently.
Wet decks, and a round,
stiff, morning breeze, blowing strongly across the deck, abeam, and gustily
through the open portholes. There was a dull grey sky, and the sea at first
sight seemed to be of a dark blue or green, but on closer inspection it took a
dirty slate colour, with splashes as of indigo in the hollows. There was one of
those near, yet far-away horizons.
About two-thirds of the
men were on deck, but the women had not shown up yet—nor did they show up until
towards the end of the trip.
Some of the men were
smoking in a sheltered corner, some walking up and down, two or three trying to
play quoits, one looking at the poultry, one standing abaft the purser’s cabin
with hands in the pockets of his long ragged overcoat, watching the engines,
and two more—carpenters—were discussing a big cedar log, about five feet in
diameter, which was lashed on deck alongside the hatch.
While we were waiting
for the Oroya some of the ship’s officers came and had a
consultation over this log and called up part of the crew, who got some more
ropes and a chain on to it. It struck us at the time that that log would make a
sensation if it fetched loose in rough weather. But there wasn’t any rough
weather.
The fore-cabin was kept
clean; the assistant steward was good-humoured and obliging; his chief was
civil enough to freeze the Never-Never country; but the bill of fare was
monotonous.
During the afternoon a
first-salooner made himself obnoxious by swelling round for’ard. He was a big
bull-necked “Britisher” (that word covers it) with a bloated face, prominent
gooseberry eyes, fore ’n’ aft cap, and long tan shoes. He seemed as if he’d
come to see a “zoo,” and was dissatisfied with it—had a fine contempt for it,
in fact, because it did not come up to other zoological gardens that he had
seen in London, and on the aw—continong and in the—aw-er—aw—the
States, dontcherknow. The fellows reckoned that he ought to be “took down a
peg” (dontcherknow) and the sandy-complexioned comedian said he’d do it. So he
stepped softly up to the swell, tapped him lightly on the shoulder, and pointed
aft—holding his arm out like a pump handle and his forefinger rigid.
The Britisher’s face was
a study; it was blank at first and then it went all colours, and wore, in
succession, every possible expression except a pleasant one. He seemed bursting
with indignation, but he did not speak—could not, perhaps; and, as soon as he
could detach his feet from the spot to which they had been nailed in the first
place by astonishment, he stalked aft. He did not come to see the zoo any more.
The fellows in the
fore-cabin that evening were growling about the bad quality of the grub supplied.
Then the shearer’s
volcano showed signs of activity. He shifted round, spat impatiently, and said:
“You chaps don’t know
what yer talkin’ about. You want something to grumble about. You should have
been out with me last year on the Paroo in Noo South Wales. The meat we got
there was so bad that it uster travel!”
“What?”
“Yes! travel! take the
track! go on the wallaby! The cockies over there used to hang the meat up on
the branches of the trees, and just shake it whenever they wanted to feed the
fowls. And the water was so bad that half a pound of tea in the billy wouldn’t
make no impression on the colour—nor the taste. The further west we went the
worse our meat got, till at last we had to carry a dog-chain to chain it up at
night. Then it got worse and broke the chain, and then we had to train the
blessed dogs to shepherd it and bring it back. But we fell in with another chap
with a bad old dog—a downright knowing, thieving, old hard-case of a dog; and
this dog led our dogs astray—-demoralized them—corrupted their morals—and so
one morning they came home with the blooming meat inside them, instead of
outside—and we had to go hungry for breakfast.”
“You’d better turn in,
gentlemen. I’m going to turn off the light,” said the steward.
The yarn reminded the
Sydney man of a dog he had, and he started some dog lies.
“This dog of mine,” he
said, “knowed the way into the best public-houses. If I came to a strange town
and wanted a good drink, I’d only have to say, ‘Jack, I’m dry,’ and he’d lead
me all right. He always knew the side entrances and private doors after hours,
and I—”
But the yarn did not go
very well—it fell flat in fact. Then the commercial traveller was taken bad
with an anecdote. “That’s nothing,” he said, “I had a black bag once that knew
the way into public-houses.”
“A what?”
“Yes. A black bag. A
long black bag like that one I’ve got there in my bunk. I was staying at a
boarding-house in Sydney, and one of us used to go out every night for a couple
of bottles of beer, and we carried the bottles in the bag; and when we got
opposite the pub the front end of the bag would begin to swing round towards
the door. It was wonderful. It was just as if there was a lump of steel in the
end of the bag and a magnet in the bar. We tried it with ever so many people,
but it always acted the same. We couldn’t use that bag for any other purpose,
for if we carried it along the street it would make our wrists ache trying to
go into pubs. It twisted my wrist one time, and it ain’t got right since—I
always feel the pain in dull weather. Well, one night we got yarning and didn’t
notice how the time was going, and forgot to go for the beer till it was nearly
too late. We looked for the bag and couldn’t find it—we generally kept it under
a side-table, but it wasn’t there, and before we were done looking, eleven
o’clock went. We sat down round the fire, feeling pretty thirsty, and were just
thinking about turning in when we heard a thump on the table behind us. We
looked round, and there was that bag with two full bottles of English ale in
it.
“Then I remembered that
I’d left a bob in the bottom of the bag, and—-”
The steward turned off
the electric light.
There were some hundreds
of cases of oranges stacked on deck, and made fast with matting and cordage to
the bulwarks. That night was very dark, and next morning there was a row. The
captain said he’d “give any man three months that he caught at those oranges.”
“Wot, yer givin’ us?”
said a shearer. “We don’t know anything about yer bloomin’ oranges.... I seen
one of the saloon passengers moochin’ round for’ard last night. You’d better
search the saloon for your blarsted oranges, an’ don’t come round tacklin’ the
wrong men.”
It was not necessary to
search our quarters, for the “offside” steward was sweeping orange peel out of
the steerage for three days thereafter.
And that night, just as
we were about to fall asleep, a round, good-humoured face loomed over the edge
of the shelf above and a small, twinkling, grey eye winked at us. Then a hand
came over, gave a jerk, and something fell on our nose. It was an orange. We
sent a “thank you” up through the boards and commenced hurriedly and furtively
to stow away the orange. But the comedian had an axe to grind—most people
have—wanted to drop his peel alongside our berth; and it made us uneasy because
we did not want circumstantial evidence lying round us if the captain chanced
to come down to inquire. The next man to us had a barney with the man above him
about the same thing. Then the peel was scattered round pretty fairly, or thrown
into an empty bunk, and no man dared growl lest he should come to be regarded
as a blackleg—a would-be informer.
The men opposite the
door kept a look out; and two Australian jokers sat in the top end berth with
their legs hanging over and swinging contentedly, and the porthole open ready
for a swift and easy disposal of circumstantial evidence on the first alarm.
They were eating a pineapple which they had sliced and extracted in sections
from a crate up on deck. They looked so chummy, and so school-boyishly happy
and contented, that they reminded us of the days long ago, when we were so
high.
The chaps had talk about
those oranges on deck next day. The commercial traveller said we had a right to
the oranges, because the company didn’t give us enough to eat. He said that we
were already suffering from insufficient proper nourishment, and he’d tell the
doctor so if the doctor came on board at Auckland. Anyway, it was no sin to rob
a company.
“But then,” said our
comedian, “those oranges, perhaps, were sent over by a poor, struggling orange
grower, with a wife and family to keep, and he’ll have to bear the loss, and a
few bob might make a lot of difference to him. It ain’t right to rob a poor
man.”
This made us feel
doubtful and mean, and one or two got uncomfortable and shifted round uneasily.
But presently the traveller came to the rescue. He said that no doubt the
oranges belonged to a middleman, and the middleman was the curse of the
country. We felt better.
Towards the end of the
trip the women began to turn up. There were five grass widows, and every female
of them had a baby. The Australian marries young and poor; and, when he can
live no longer in his native land, he sells the furniture, buys a steerage
ticket to New Zealand or Western Australia, and leaves his wife with her
relatives or friends until he earns enough money to send for her. Four of our
women were girl-wives, and mostly pretty. One little handful of a thing had a
fine baby boy, nearly as big as herself, and she looked so fragile and pale,
and pretty and lonely, and had such an appealing light in her big shadowed
brown eyes, and such a pathetic droop at the corners of her sweet little mouth,
that you longed to take her in your manly arms—baby and all—and comfort her.
The last afternoon on high
seas was spent in looking through glasses for the Pinnacles, off North Cape.
And, as we neared the land, the commercial traveller remarked that he wouldn’t
mind if there was a wreck now—provided we all got saved. “We’d have all our
names in the papers,” he said. “Gallant conduct of the passengers and crew.
Heroic rescue by Mr So-and-so-climbing the cliffs with a girl under his arm,
and all that sort of thing.”
The chaps smiled a
doleful smile, and turned away again to look at the Promised Land. They had had
no anxiety to speak of for the last two or three days; but now they were again
face to face with the cursed question, “How to make a living.” They were
wondering whether or no they would get work in New Zealand, and feeling more
doubtful about it than when they embarked.
Pity we couldn’t go to
sea and sail away for ever, and never see land any more—or, at least, not till
better and brighter days—if they ever come.
Malachi was very tall,
very thin, and very round-shouldered, and the sandiness of his hair also cried
aloud for an adjective. All the boys considered Malachi the greatest ass on the
station, and there was no doubt that he was an awful fool. He
had never been out of his native bush in all his life, excepting once, when he
paid a short visit to Sydney, and when he returned it was evident that his
nerves had received a shaking. We failed to draw one word out of Malachi
regarding his views on the city—to describe it was not in his power, for it had
evidently been something far beyond his comprehension. Even after his visit had
become a matter of history, if you were to ask him what he thought of Sydney
the dazed expression would come back into his face, and he would scratch his
head and say in a slow and deliberate manner, “Well, there’s no mistake, it’s a
caution.” And as such the city remained, so far as Malachi’s opinion of it was
concerned.
Malachi was always
shabbily dressed, in spite of his pound a week and board, and “When Malachi
gets a new suit of clothes” was the expression invariably used by the boys to
fix a date for some altogether improbable event. We were always having larks
with Malachi, for we looked upon him as our legitimate butt. He seldom
complained, and when he did his remonstrance hardly ever went beyond repeating
the words, “Now, none of your pranktical jokes!” If this had not the desired
effect, and we put up some too outrageous trick on him, he would content
himself by muttering with sorrowful conviction, “Well, there’s no mistake, it’s
a caution.”
We were not content with
common jokes, such as sewing up the legs of Malachi’s trousers while he slept,
fixing his bunk, or putting explosives in his pipe—we aspired to some of the
higher branches of the practical joker’s art. It was well known that Malachi
had an undying hatred for words of four syllables and over, and the use of them
was always sufficient to forfeit any good opinions he might have previously
entertained concerning the user. “I hate them high-flown words,” he would
say—“I got a book at home that I could get them out of if I wanted them; but I
don’t.” The book referred to was a very dilapidated dictionary. Malachi’s
hatred for high-flown words was only equalled by his aversion to the opposite
sex; and, this being known, we used to write letters to him in a feminine hand,
threatening divers breach of promise actions, and composed in the high-flown
language above alluded to. We used to think this very funny, and by these means
we made his life a burden to him. Malachi put the most implicit faith in everything
we told him; he would take in the most improbable yarn provided we preserved a
grave demeanour and used no high-flown expressions. He would indeed sometimes
remark that our yarns were a caution, but that was all.
We played upon him the
most gigantic joke of all during the visit of a certain bricklayer, who came to
do some work at the homestead. “Bricky” was a bit of a phrenologist, and knew
enough of physiognomy and human nature to give a pretty fair delineation of
character. He also went in for spirit-rapping, greatly to the disgust of the
two ancient housekeepers, who declared that they’d have “no dalins wid him and
his divil’s worruk.”’
The bricklayer was from
the first an object of awe to Malachi, who carefully avoided him; but one night
we got the butt into a room where the artisan was entertaining the boys with a
seance. After the table-rapping, during which Malachi sat with uncovered head
and awe-struck expression, we proposed that he should have his bumps read, and
before he could make his escape Malachi was seated in a chair in the middle of
the room and the bricklayer was running his fingers over his head. I really
believe that Malachi’s hair bristled between the phrenologist’s fingers.
Whenever he made a hit his staunch admirer, “Donegal,” would exclaim “Look at
that now!” while the girls tittered and said, “Just fancy!” and from time to
time Malachi would be heard to mutter to himself, in a tone of the most intense
conviction, that, “without the least mistake it was a caution.” Several times
at his work the next day Malachi was observed to rest on his spade, while he
tilted his hat forward with one hand and felt the back of his head as though he
had not been previously aware of its existence.
We “ran” Malachi to
believe that the bricklayer was mad on the subject of phrenology, and was
suspected of having killed several persons in order to obtain their skulls for
experimental purposes. We further said that he had been heard to say that
Malachi’s skull was a most extraordinary one, and so we advised him to be
careful.
Malachi occupied a hut
some distance from the station, and one night, the last night of the
bricklayer’s stay, as Malachi sat smoking over the fire the door opened quietly
and the phrenologist entered. He carried a bag with a pumpkin in the bottom of
it, and, sitting down on a stool, he let the bag down with a bump on the floor
between his feet. Malachi was badly scared, but he managed to stammer out—
“’Ello!” “’Ello!” said
the phrenologist.
There was an
embarrassing silence, which was at last broken by “Bricky” saying “How are you
gettin’ on, Malachi?”
“Oh, jist right,”
replied Malachi.
Nothing was said for a
while, until Malachi, after fidgeting a good deal on his stool, asked the
bricklayer when he was leaving the station.
“Oh, I’m going away in
the morning, early,” said he. “I’ve jist been over to Jimmy Nowlett’s camp, and
as I was passing I thought I’d call and get your head.”
“What?”
“I come for your skull.
“Yes,” the phrenologist
continued, while Malachi sat horror-stricken; “I’ve got Jimmy Nowlett’s skull
here,” and he lifted the bag and lovingly felt the pumpkin—it must have weighed
forty pounds. “I spoilt one of his best bumps with the tomahawk. I had to hit
him twice, but it’s no use crying over spilt milk.” Here he drew a heavy
shingling-hammer out of the bag and wiped off with his sleeve something that
looked like blood. Malachi had been edging round for the door, and now he made
a rush for it. But the skull-fancier was there before him.
“Gor-sake you don’t want
to murder me!” gasped Malachi.
“Not if I can get your
skull any other way,” said Bricky.
“Oh!” gasped Malachi—and
then, with a vague idea that it was best to humour a lunatic, he continued, in
a tone meant to be off-hand and careless—“Now, look here, if yer only waits
till I die you can have my whole skelington and welcome.”
“Now Malachi,” said the
phrenologist sternly, “d’ye think I’m a fool? I ain’t going to stand any
humbug. If yer acts sensible you’ll be quiet, and it’ll soon be over, but if
yer—-”
Malachi did not wait to
hear the rest. He made a spring for the back of the hut and through it, taking
down a large new sheet of stringy-bark in his flight. Then he could be heard
loudly ejaculating “It’s a caution!” as he went through the bush like a
startled kangaroo, and he didn’t stop till he reached the station.
Jimmy Nowlett and I had
been peeping through a crack in the same sheet of bark that Malachi dislodged;
it fell on us and bruised us somewhat, but it wasn’t enough to knock the fun
out of the thing.
When Jimmy Nowlett
crawled out from under the bark he had to lie down on Malachi’s bunk to laugh,
and even for some time afterwards it was not unusual for Jimmy to wake up in
the’ night and laugh till we wished him dead.
I should like to finish
here, but there remains something more to be said about Malachi.
One of the best cows at
the homestead had a calf, about which she made a great deal of fuss. She was
ordinarily a quiet, docile creature, and, though somewhat fussy after calving
no one ever dreamed that she would injure anyone. It happened one day that the
squatter’s daughter and her intended husband, a Sydney exquisite, were
strolling in a paddock where the cow was. Whether the cow objected to the
masher or his lady love’s red parasol, or whether she suspected designs upon
her progeny, is not certain; anyhow, she went for them. The young man saw the
cow coming first, and he gallantly struck a bee-line for the fence, leaving the
girl to manage for herself. She wouldn’t have managed very well if Malachi
hadn’t been passing just then. He saw the girl’s danger and ran to intercept
the cow with no weapon but his hands.
It didn’t last long.
There was a roar, a rush, and a cloud of dust, out of which the cow presently
emerged, and went scampering back to the bush in which her calf was hidden.
We carried Malachi home
and laid him on a bed. He had a terrible wound in the groin, and the blood
soaked through the bandages like water. We did all that was possible for him,
the boys killed the squatter’s best horse and spoilt two others riding for a
doctor, but it was of no use. In the last half-hour of his life we all gathered
round Malachi’s bed; he was only twenty-two. Once he said:
“I wonder how mother’ll
manage now?”
“Why, where’s your
mother?” someone asked gently; we had never dreamt that Malachi might have
someone to love him and be proud of him.
“In Bathurst,” he
answered wearily—“she’ll take on awful, I ’spect, she was awful fond of
me—we’ve been pulling together this last ten years—mother and me—we wanted to
make it all right for my little brother Jim—poor Jim!”
“What’s wrong with Jim?”
someone asked.
“Oh, he’s blind,” said
Malachi “always was—we wanted to make it all right for him agin time he grows
up—I—I managed to send home about—about forty pounds a year—we bought a bit of
ground, and—and—I think—I’m going now. Tell ’em, Harry—tell ’em how it was—”
I had to go outside
then. I couldn’t stand it any more. There was a lump in my throat and I’d have
given anything to wipe out my share in the practical jokes, but it was too late
now.
Malachi was dead when I
went in again, and that night the hat went round with the squatter’s cheque in
the bottom of it and we made it “all right” for Malachi’s blind brother Jim.
“Nothing makes a dog
madder,” said Mitchell, “than to have another dog come outside his fence and
sniff and bark at him through the cracks when he can’t get out. The other dog
might be an entire stranger; he might be an old chum, and he mightn’t bark—only
sniff—but it makes no difference to the inside dog. The inside dog generally
starts it, and the outside dog only loses his temper and gets wild because the
inside dog has lost his and got mad and made such a stinking fuss about nothing
at all; and then the outside dog barks back and makes matters a thousand times
worse, and the inside dog foams at the mouth and dashes the foam about, and
goes at it like a million steel traps.
“I can’t tell why the
inside dog gets so wild about it in the first place, except, perhaps, because
he thinks the outside dog has taken him at a disadvantage and is ‘poking it at
him;’ anyway, he gets madder the longer it lasts, and at last he gets savage
enough to snap off his own tail and tear it to bits, because he can’t get out
and chew up that other dog; and, if he did get out, he’d kill the other dog, or
try to, even if it was his own brother.
“Sometimes the outside
dog only smiles and trots off; sometimes he barks back good-humouredly;
sometimes he only just gives a couple of disinterested barks as if he isn’t
particular, but is expected, because of his dignity and doghood, to say
something under the circumstances; and sometimes, if the outside dog is a
little dog, he’ll get away from that fence in a hurry on the first surprise,
or, if he’s a cheeky little dog, he’ll first make sure that the inside dog
can’t get out, and then he’ll have some fun.
“It’s amusing to see a
big dog, of the Newfoundland kind, sniffing along outside a fence with a broad,
good-natured grin on his face all the time the inside dog is whooping away at the
rate of thirty whoops a second, and choking himself, and covering himself with
foam, and dashing the spray through the cracks, and jolting and jerking every
joint in his body up to the last joint in his tail.
“Sometimes the inside
dog is a little dog, and the smaller he is the more row he makes—but then he
knows he’s safe. And, sometimes, as I said before, the outside dog is a
short-tempered dog who hates a row, and never wants to have a disagreement with
anybody—like a good many peaceful men, who hate rows, and are always nice and
civil and pleasant, in a nasty, unpleasant, surly, sneering sort of civil way
that makes you want to knock their heads off; men who never start a row, but
keep it going, and make it a thousand times worse when it’s once started, just
because they didn’t start it—and keep on saying so, and that the other party
did. The short-tempered outside dog gets wild at the other dog for losing his
temper, and says:
“‘What are you making
such a fuss about? What’s the matter with you, anyway? Hey?’
“And the inside dog
says:
“‘Who do you think
you’re talking to? You—-! I’ll——’ etc., etc., etc.
“Then the outside dog
says:
“‘Why, you’re worse than
a flaming old slut!’
“Then they go at it, and
you can hear them miles off, like a Chinese war—like a hundred great guns
firing eighty blank cartridges a minute, till the outside dog is just as wild
to get inside and eat the inside dog as the inside dog is to get out and
disembowel him. Yet if those same two dogs were to meet casually outside they
might get chummy at once, and be the best of friends, and swear everlasting
mateship, and take each other home.”
She lived in Jones’s
Alley. She cleaned offices, washed, and nursed from daylight until any time
after dark, and filled in her spare time cleaning her own place (which she
always found dirty—in a “beastly filthy state,” she called it—on account of the
children being left in possession all day), cooking, and nursing her own
sick—for her family, though small, was so in the two senses of the word, and
sickly; one or another of the children was always sick, but not through her
fault. She did her own, or rather the family washing, at home too, when she
couldn’t do it by kind permission, or surreptitiously in connection with that
of her employers. She was a haggard woman. Her second husband was supposed to
be dead, and she, lived in dread of his daily resurrection. Her eldest son was
at large, but, not being yet sufficiently hardened in misery, she dreaded his
getting into trouble even more than his frequent and interested appearances at
home. She could buy off the son for a shilling or two and a clean shirt and
collar, but she couldn’t purchase the absence of the father at any price—he claimed
what he called his “conzugal rights” as well as his board, lodging, washing and
beer. She slaved for her children, and nag-nag-nagged them everlastingly,
whether they were in the right or in the wrong, but they were hardened to it
and took small notice. She had the spirit of a bullock. Her whole nature was soured.
She had those “worse troubles” which she couldn’t tell to anybody, but had to
suffer in silence.
She also, in what she
called her “spare time,” put new cuffs and collar-bands on gentlemen’s shirts.
The gentlemen didn’t live in Jones’s Alley—they boarded with a patroness of the
haggard woman; they didn’t know their shirts were done there—had they known it,
and known Jones’s Alley, one or two of them, who were medical students, might
probably have objected. The landlady charged them just twice as much for
repairing their shirts as she paid the haggard woman, who, therefore, being
unable to buy the cuffs and collar-bands ready-made for sewing on, had no lack
of employment with which to fill in her spare time.
Therefore, she was a
“respectable woman,” and was known in Jones’s Alley as “Misses” Aspinall, and
called so generally, and even by Mother Brock, who kept “that place” opposite.
There is implied a world of difference between the “Mother” and the “Misses,”
as applied to matrons in Jones’s Alley; and this distinction was about the only
thing—always excepting the everlasting “children”—that the haggard woman had
left to care about, to take a selfish, narrow-minded sort of pleasure in—if,
indeed, she could yet take pleasure, grim or otherwise, in anything except,
perhaps, a good cup of tea and time to drink it in.
Times were hard with Mrs
Aspinall. Two coppers and two half-pence in her purse were threepence to her
now, and the absence of one of the half-pence made a difference to her,
especially in Paddy’s market—that eloquent advertisement of a young city’s sin
and poverty and rotten wealth—on Saturday night. She counted the coppers as
anxiously and nervously as a thirsty dead-beat does. And her house was “falling
down on her” and her troubles, and she couldn’t get the landlord to do a
“han’stern” to it.
At last, after
persistent agitation on her part (but not before a portion of the plastered
ceiling had fallen and severely injured one of her children) the landlord
caused two men to be sent to “effect necessary repairs” to the three square,
dingy, plastered holes—called “three rooms and a kitchen”—for the privilege of
living in which, and calling it “my place,” she paid ten shillings a week.
Previously the agent, as
soon as he had received the rent and signed the receipt, would cut short her
reiterated complaints—which he privately called her “clack”—by saying that he’d
see to it, he’d speak to the landlord; and, later on, that he had spoken
to him, or could do nothing more in the matter—that it wasn’t his business.
Neither it was, to do the agent justice. It was his business to collect the
rent, and thereby earn the means of paying his own. He had to keep a family on
his own account, by assisting the Fat Man to keep his at the expense of
people—especially widows with large families, or women, in the case of Jones’s
Alley—who couldn’t afford it without being half-starved, or running greater and
unspeakable risks which “society” is not supposed to know anything about.
So the agent was right,
according to his lights. The landlord had recently turned out a family who had
occupied one of his houses for fifteen years, because they were six weeks in
arrears. He let them take their furniture, and explained: “I wouldn’t have been
so lenient with them only they were such old tenants of mine.” So the landlord
was always in the right according to his lights.
But the agent naturally
wished to earn his living as peacefully and as comfortably as possible, so,
when the accident occurred, he put the matter so persistently and strongly
before the landlord that he said at last: “Well, tell her to go to White, the
contractor, and he’ll send a man to do what’s to be done; and don’t bother me
any more.”
White had a look at the
place, and sent a plasterer, a carpenter, and a plumber. The plasterer knocked
a bigger hole in the ceiling and filled it with mud; the carpenter nailed a
board over the hole in the floor; the plumber stopped the leak in the kitchen,
and made three new ones in worse places; and their boss sent the bill to Mrs Aspinall.
She went to the
contractor’s yard, and explained that the landlord was responsible for the
debt, not she. The contractor explained that he had seen the landlord, who
referred him to her. She called at the landlord’s private house, and was
referred through a servant to the agent. The agent was sympathetic, but could
do nothing in the matter—it wasn’t his business; he also asked her to put
herself in his place, which she couldn’t, not being any more reasonable than
such women are in such cases. She let things drift, being powerless to prevent
them from doing so; and the contractor sent another bill, then a debt collector
and then another bill, then the collector again, and threatened to take
proceedings, and finally took them. To make matters worse, she was two weeks in
arrears with the rent, and the wood-and-coalman’s man (she had dealt with them
for ten years) was pushing her, as also were her grocers, with whom she had
dealt for fifteen years and never owed a penny before.
She waylaid the
landlord, and he told her shortly that he couldn’t build houses and give them
away, and keep them in repair afterwards.
She sought for sympathy
and found it, but mostly in the wrong places. It was comforting, but
unprofitable. Mrs Next-door sympathized warmly, and offered to go up as a
witness—she had another landlord. The agent sympathized wearily, but not in the
presence of witnesses—he wanted her to put herself in his place. Mother Brock,
indeed, offered practical assistance, which offer was received in breathlessly
indignant silence. It was Mother Brock who first came to the assistance of Mrs
Aspinall’s child when the plaster accident took place (the mother being absent
at the time), and when Mrs Aspinall heard of it, her indignation cured her of
her fright, and she declared to Mrs Next-door that she would give “that
woman”—meaning Mother Brock—“in char-rge the instant she ever dared to
put her foot inside her (Mrs A.’s) respectable door-step again. She was a
respectable, honest, hard-working woman, and—-” etc.
Whereat Mother Brock
laughed good-naturedly. She was a broad-minded bad woman, and was right
according to her lights. Poor Mrs A. was a respectable,
haggard woman, and was right according to her lights, and to
Mrs Next-door’s, perfectly so—they being friends—and vice versa.
None of them knew, or would have taken into consideration, the fact that the
landlord had lost all his money in a burst financial institution, and half his
houses in the general depression, and depended for food for his family on the
somewhat doubtful rents of the remainder. So they were all right according to
their different lights.
Mrs Aspinall even sought
sympathy of “John,” the Chinaman (with whom she had dealt for four months
only), and got it. He also, in all simplicity, took a hint that wasn’t
intended. He said: “Al li’. Pay bimeby. Nexy time Flyday. Me tlust.” Then he
departed with his immortalized smile. It would almost appear that he was
wrong—according to our idea of Chinese lights.
Mrs Aspinall went to the
court—it was a small local court. Mrs Next-door was awfully sorry, but she
couldn’t possibly get out that morning. The contractor had the landlord up as a
witness. The landlord and the P.M. nodded pleasantly to each other, and wished
each other good morning.... Verdict for plaintiff with costs... Next case!...
“You mustn’t take up the time of the court, my good woman.”.. “Now,
constable!”... “Arder in the court!”... “Now, my good woman,” said the
policeman in an undertone, “you must go out; there’s another case on-come now.”
And he steered her—but not unkindly—through the door.
“My good woman” stood in
the crowd outside, and looked wildly round for a sympathetic face that
advertised sympathetic ears. But others had their own troubles, and avoided
her. She wanted someone to relieve her bursting heart to; she couldn’t wait
till she got home.
Even “John’s” attentive
ear and mildly idiotic expression would have been welcome, but he was gone.
He had been in court that morning, and had won a small debt
case, and had departed cheerfully, under the impression that he lost it.
“Y’aw Mrs Aspinall,
ain’t you?”
She started, and looked
round. He was one of those sharp, blue or grey-eyed, sandy or freckled
complexioned boys-of-the-world whom we meet everywhere and at all times, who
are always going on towards twenty, yet never seem to get clear out of their
teens, who know more than most of us have forgotten, who understand human
nature instinctively—perhaps unconsciously—and are instinctively sympathetic
and diplomatic; whose satire is quick, keen, and dangerous, and whose tact is
often superior to that of many educated men-of-the-world. Trained from
childhood in the great school of poverty, they are full of the pathos and
humour of it.
“Don’t you remember me?”
“No; can’t say I do. I
fancy I’ve seen your face before somewhere.”
“I was at your place
when little Arvie died. I used to work with him at Grinder Brothers’, you
know.”
“Oh, of course I
remember you! What was I thinking about? I’ve had such a lot of worry lately
that I don’t know whether I’m on my head or my heels. Besides, you’ve grown
since then, and changed a lot. You’re Billy—Billy—-”
“Billy Anderson’s my
name.”
“Of course! To be sure!
I remember you quite well.”
“How’ve you been gettin’
on, Mrs Aspinall?”
“Ah! Don’t mention
it—nothing but worry and trouble—nothing but worry and trouble. This grinding
poverty! I’ll never have anything else but worry and trouble and misery so long
as I live.”
“Do you live in Jones’s
Alley yet?”
“Yes.”
“Not bin there ever
since, have you?”
“No; I shifted away
once, but I went back again. I was away nearly two years.”
“I thought so, because I
called to see you there once. Well, I’m goin’ that way now. You goin’ home, Mrs
Aspinall?”
“Yes.”
“Well, I’ll go along
with you, if you don’t mind.”
“Thanks. I’d be only too
glad of company.”
“Goin’ to walk, Mrs
Aspinall?” asked Bill, as the tram stopped in their way.
“Yes. I can’t afford
trams now—times are too hard.”
“Sorry I don’t happen to
have no tickets on me!”
“Oh, don’t mention it.
I’m well used to walking. I’d rather walk than ride.”
They waited till the
tram passed.
“Some people”—said Bill,
reflectively, but with a tinge of indignation in his tone, as they crossed the
street—“some people can afford to ride in trams.
“What’s your trouble,
Mrs Aspinall—if it’s a fair thing to ask?” said Bill, as they turned the
corner.
This was all she wanted,
and more; and when, about a mile later, she paused for breath, he drew a long
one, gave a short whistle, and said:
“Well, it’s red-hot!”
Thus encouraged, she
told her story again, and some parts of it for the third and fourth and even
fifth time—and it grew longer, as our stories have a painful tendency to do
when we re-write them with a view to condensation.
But Bill heroically
repeated that it was “red-hot.”
“And I dealt off the
grocer for fifteen years, and the wood-and-coal man for ten, and I lived in
that house nine years last Easter Monday and never owed a penny before,” she
repeated for the tenth time.
“Well, that’s a
mistake,” reflected Bill. “I never dealt off nobody more’n twice in my life....
I heerd you was married again, Mrs Aspinall—if it’s a right thing to ask?”
“Wherever did you hear
that? I did get married again—to my sorrow.”
“Then you ain’t Mrs
Aspinall—if it’s a fair thing to ask?”
“Oh, yes! I’m known as
Mrs Aspinall. They all call me Mrs Aspinall.”
“I understand. He
cleared, didn’t he? Run away?”
“Well, yes—no—-he—-”
“I understand. He’s
s’posed to be dead?”
“Yes.”
“Well, that’s red-hot!
So’s my old man, and I hope he don’t resurrect again.”
“You see, I married my
second for the sake of my children.”
“That’s a great
mistake,” reflected Bill. “My mother married my step-father for the sake of me,
and she’s never been done telling me about it.”
“Indeed! Did your mother
get married again?”
“Yes. And he left me
with a batch of step-sisters and step-brothers to look after, as well as
mother; as if things wasn’t bad enough before. We didn’t want no help to be
pinched, and poor, and half-starved. I don’t see where my sake comes in at
all.”
“And how’s your mother
now?”
“Oh, she’s all right,
thank you. She’s got a hard time of it, but she’s pretty well used to it.”
“And are you still
working at Grinder Brothers’?”
“No. I got tired of
slavin’ there for next to nothing. I got sick of my step-father waitin’ outside
for me on pay-day, with a dirty, drunken, spieler pal of his waitin’ round the
corner for him. There wasn’t nothin’ in it. It got to be too rough
altogether.... Blast Grinders!”
“And what are you doing
now?”
“Sellin’ papers. I’m
always tryin’ to get a start in somethin’ else, but I ain’t got no luck. I
always come back to, sellin’ papers.”
Then, after a thought,
he added reflectively: “Blast papers!”
His present ambition was
to drive a cart.
“I drove a cart twice,
and once I rode a butcher’s horse. A bloke worked me out of one billet, and I
worked myself out of the other. I didn’t know when I was well off. Then the
banks went bust, and my last boss went insolvent, and one of his partners went
into Darlinghurst for suicide, and the other went into Gladesville for being mad;
and one day the bailiff seized the cart and horse with me in it and a load of
timber. So I went home and helped mother and the kids to live on one meal a day
for six months, and keep the bum-bailiff out. Another cove had my news-stand.”
Then, after a thought
“Blast reconstriction!”
“But you surely can’t
make a living selling newspapers?”
“No, there’s nothin’ in
it. There’s too many at it. The blessed women spoil it. There’s one got a good
stand down in George Street, and she’s got a dozen kids sellin’—they can’t be
all hers-and then she’s got the hide to come up to my stand and sell in front
of me.... What are you thinkin’ about doin’, Mrs Aspinall?”
“I don’t know,” she
wailed. “I really don’t know what to do.”
And there still being
some distance to go, she plunged into her tale of misery once more, not
forgetting the length of time she had dealt with her creditors.
Bill pushed his hat
forward and walked along on the edge of the kerb.
“Can’t you shift? Ain’t
you got no people or friends that you can go to for a while?”
“Oh, yes; there’s my
sister-in-law; she’s asked me times without number to come and stay with her
till things got better, and she’s got a hard enough struggle herself, Lord
knows. She asked me again only yesterday.”
“Well, that ain’t too
bad,” reflected Bill. “Why don’t you go?”
“Well, you see, if I did
they wouldn’t let me take my furniture, and she’s got next to none.”
“Won’t the landlord let
you take your furniture?”
“No, not him! He’s one
of the hardest landlords in Sydney—the worst I ever had.”
“That’s red-hot!... I’d
take it in spite of him. He can’t do nothin’.”
“But I daren’t; and even
if I did I haven’t got a penny to pay for a van.”
They neared the alley.
Bill counted the flagstones, stepping from one to another over the joints.
“Eighteen-nineteen-twenty-twenty-one!” he counted mentally, and came to the
corner kerbing. Then he turned suddenly and faced her.
“I’ll tell you what to
do,” he said decidedly. “Can you get your things ready by to-night? I know a
cove that’s got a cart.”
“But I daren’t. I’m
afraid of the landlord.”
“The more fool you,”
said Bill. “Well, I’m not afraid of him. He can’t do nothin’. I’m not afraid of
a landlady, and that’s worse. I know the law. He can’t do nothin’. You just do
as I tell you.”
“I’d want to think over
it first, and see my sister-in-law.”
“Where does your
sister-’n-law live?”
“Not far.”
“Well, see her, and
think over it—you’ve got plenty of time to do it in—and get your things ready
by dark. Don’t be frightened. I’ve shifted mother and an aunt and two married
sisters out of worse fixes than yours. I’ll be round after dark, and bring a
push to lend a hand. They’re decent coves.”
“But I can’t expect your
friend to shift me for nothing. I told you I haven’t got a—-”
“Mrs Aspinall, I ain’t
that sort of a bloke, neither is my chum, and neither is the other
fellows—’relse they wouldn’t be friends of mine. Will you promise, Mrs
Aspinall?”
“I’m afraid—I—I’d like
to keep my few things now. I’ve kept them so long. It’s hard to lose my few
bits of things—I wouldn’t care so much if I could keep the ironin’ table.”
“So you could, by
law—it’s necessary to your living, but it would cost more’n the table. Now,
don’t be soft, Mrs Aspinall. You’ll have the bailiff in any day, and be turned
out in the end without a rag. The law knows no ‘necessary.’ You want your
furniture more’n the landlord does. He can’t do nothin’. You can trust it all
to me.... I knowed Arvie.... Will you do it?”
“Yes, I will.”
At about eight o’clock
that evening there came a mysterious knock at Mrs Aspinall’s door. She opened,
and there stood Bill. His attitude was business-like, and his manner very
impressive. Three other boys stood along by the window, with their backs to the
wall, deeply interested in the emptying of burnt cigarette-ends into a piece of
newspaper laid in the crown of one of their hats, and a fourth stood a little
way along the kerb casually rolling a cigarette, and keeping a quiet eye out
for suspicious appearances. They were of different makes and sizes, but there
seemed an undefined similarity between them.
“This is my push, Mrs
Aspinall,” said Bill; “at least,” he added apologetically, “it’s part of ’em.
Here, you chaps, this is Mrs Aspinall, what I told you about.”
They elbowed the wall
back, rubbed their heads with their hats, shuffled round, and seemed to take a
vacant sort of interest in abstract objects, such as the pavement, the
gas-lamp, and neighbouring doors and windows.
“Got the things ready?”
asked Bill.
“Oh, yes.”
“Got ’em downstairs?”
“There’s no upstairs.
The rooms above belong to the next house.”
“And a nice house it
is,” said Bill, “for rooms to belong to. I wonder,” he reflected, cocking his
eye at the windows above; “I wonder how the police manage to keep an eye on the
next house without keepin’ an eye on yours—but they know.”
He turned towards the
street end of the alley and gave a low whistle. Out under the lamp from behind
the corner came a long, thin, shambling, hump-backed youth, with his hat down
over his head like an extinguisher, dragging a small bony horse, which, in its
turn, dragged a rickety cart of the tray variety, such as is used in the dead
marine trade. Behind the cart was tied a mangy retriever. This affair was drawn
up opposite the door.
“The cove with a cart”
was introduced as ‘Chinny’. He had no chin whatever, not even a receding chin.
It seemed as though his chin had been cut clean off horizontally. When he took
off his hat he showed to the mild surprise of strangers a pair of shrewd grey
eyes and a broad high forehead. Chinny was in the empty bottle line.
“Now, then, hold up that
horse of yours for a minute, Chinny,” said Bill briskly, “’relse he’ll fall
down and break the shaft again.” (It had already been broken in several places
and spliced with strips of deal, clothes-line, and wire.) “Now, you chaps,
fling yourselves about and get the furniture out.”
This was a great relief
to the push. They ran against each other and the door-post in their eagerness
to be at work. The furniture—what Mrs A. called her “few bits of things”—was
carried out with elaborate care. The ironing table was the main item. It was
placed top down in the cart, and the rest of the things went between the legs
without bulging sufficiently to cause Chinny any anxiety.
Just then the picket
gave a low, earnest whistle, and they were aware of a policeman standing
statue-like under the lamp on the opposite corner, and apparently unaware of
their existence. He was looking, sphinx-like, past them towards the city.
“It can’t be helped; we
must put on front an’ go on with it now,” said Bill.
“He’s all right, I
think,” said Chinny. “He knows me.”
“He can’t do nothin’,”
said Bill; “don’t mind him, Mrs Aspinall. Now, then (to the push), tie up.
Don’t be frightened of the dorg-what are you frightened of? Why! he’d only
apologize if you trod on his tail.”
The dog went under the
cart, and kept his tail carefully behind him.
The policeman—he was an
elderly man—stood still, looking towards the city, and over it, perhaps, and
over the sea, to long years agone in Ireland when he and the boys ducked
bailiffs, and resisted evictions with “shticks,” and “riz” sometimes, and
gathered together at the rising of the moon, and did many things contrary to
the peace of Gracious Majesty, its laws and constitutions, crown and dignity;
as a reward for which he had helped to preserve the said peace for the best
years of his life, without promotion; for he had a great aversion to running in
“the boys”—which included nearly all mankind—and preferred to keep, and was
most successful in keeping, the peace with no other assistance than that of his
own rich fatherly brogue.
Bill took charge of two
of the children; Mrs Aspinall carried the youngest.
“Go ahead, Chinny,” said
Bill.
Chinny shambled forward,
sideways, dragging the horse, with one long, bony, short-sleeved arm stretched
out behind holding the rope reins; the horse stumbled out of the gutter, and
the cart seemed to pause a moment, as if undecided whether to follow or not,
and then, with many rickety complaints, moved slowly and painfully up on to the
level out of the gutter. The dog rose with a long, weary, mangy sigh, but with
a lazy sort of calculation, before his rope (which was short) grew taut—which
was good judgment on his part, for his neck was sore; and his feet being
tender, he felt his way carefully and painfully over the metal, as if he feared
that at any step he might spring some treacherous, air-trigger trap-door which
would drop and hang him.
“Nit, you chaps,” said
Bill, “and wait for me.” The push rubbed its head with its hat, said “Good
night, Mrs Ashpennel,” and was absent, spook-like.
When the funeral reached
the street, the lonely “trap” was, somehow, two blocks away in the opposite
direction, moving very slowly, and very upright, and very straight, like an
automaton.
At the local police
court, where the subject of this sketch turned up periodically amongst the
drunks, he had “James” prefixed to his name for the sake of convenience and as
a matter of form previous to his being fined forty shillings (which he never
paid) and sentenced to “a month hard” (which he contrived to make as soft as
possible). The local larrikins called him “Grog,” a very appropriate name, all
things considered; but to the Geebung Times he was known until the day of his
death as “a well-known character named Bogg.” The antipathy of the local paper
might have been accounted for by the fact that Bogg strayed into the office one
day in a muddled condition during the absence of the staff at lunch and
corrected a revise proof of the next week’s leader, placing bracketed “query”
and “see proof” marks opposite the editor’s most flowery periods and
quotations, and leaving on the margin some general advice to the printers to
“space better.” He also corrected a Latin quotation or two, and added a few
ideas of his own in good French.
But no one, with the
exception of the editor of the Times, ever dreamed that there was anything out
of the common in the shaggy, unkempt head upon which poor Bogg used to “do his
little time,” until a young English doctor came to practise at Geebung. One
night the doctor and the manager of the local bank and one or two others
wandered into the bar of the Diggers’ Arms, where Bogg sat in a dark corner
mumbling to himself as usual and spilling half his beer on the table and floor.
Presently some drunken utterances reached the doctor’s ear, and he turned round
in a surprised manner and looked at Bogg. The drunkard continued to mutter for
some time, and then broke out into something like the fag-end of a song. The
doctor walked over to the table at which Bogg was sitting, and, seating himself
on the far corner, regarded the drunkard attentively for some minutes; but the
latter’s voice ceased, his head fell slowly on his folded arms, and all became
silent except the drip, drip of the overturned beer falling from the table to
the form and from the form to the floor.
The doctor rose and
walked back to his friends with a graver face.
“You seem interested in
Bogg,” said the bank manager.
“Yes,” said the doctor.
“What was he mumbling
about?”
“Oh, that was a passage
from Homer.”
“What?”
The doctor repeated his
answer.
“Then do you mean to say
he understands Greek?”
“Yes,” said the doctor,
sadly; “he is, or must have been, a classical scholar.”
The manager took time to
digest this, and then asked:
“What was the song?”
“Oh, that was an old
song we used to sing at the Dublin University,” said the doctor.
During his sober days
Bogg used to fossick about among the old mullock heaps, or split palings in the
bush, and just managed to keep out of debt. Strange to say, in spite of his
drunken habits, his credit was as good as that of any man in the town. He was
very unsociable, seldom speaking, whether drunk or sober; but a weary, hard-up
sundowner was always pretty certain to get a meal and a shake-down at Bogg’s lonely
hut among the waste heaps. It happened one dark night that a little push of
local larrikins, having nothing better to amuse them, wended their way through
the old mullock heaps in the direction of the lonely little bark hut, with the
object of playing off an elaborately planned ghost joke on Bogg. Prior to
commencing operations, the leader of the jokers put his eye to a crack in the
bark to reconnoitre. He didn’t see much, but what he did see seemed to interest
him, for he kept his eye there till his mates grew impatient. Bogg sat in front
of his rough little table with his elbows on the same, and his hands supporting
his forehead. Before him on the table lay a few articles such as lady novelists
and poets use in their work, and such as bitter cynics often wear secretly next
their bitter, cynical hearts.
There was the usual
faded letter, a portrait of a girl, something that looked like a pressed
flower, and, of course, a lock of hair. Presently Bogg folded his arms over
these things, and his face sank lower and lower, till nothing was visible to
the unsuspected watcher except the drunkard’s rough, shaggy hair; rougher and
wilder looking in the uncertain light of the slush-lamp.
The larrikin turned
away, and beckoned his comrades to follow him.
“Wot is it?” asked one,
when they had gone some distance. The leader said, “We’re a-goin’ ter let ’im
alone; that’s wot it is.”
There was some demur at
this, and an explanation was demanded; but the boss bully unbuttoned his coat,
and spat on his hands, and said:
“We’re a-goin’ ter let
Bogg alone; that’s wot it is.”
So they went away and
let Bogg alone.
A few days later the
following paragraph appeared in the Geebung Times: “A well-known
character named Bogg was found drowned in the river on Sunday last, his hat and
coat being found on the bank. At a late hour on Saturday night a member of our
staff saw a man walking slowly along the river bank, but it was too dark to
identify the person.”
We suppose it was Bogg
whom the Times reported, but of course we cannot be sure. The
chances are that it was Bogg. It was pretty evident that he had committed
suicide, and being “a well-known character,” no doubt he had reasons for his
rash act. Perhaps he was walking by himself in the dark along the river bank,
and thinking of those reasons when the Times man saw him.
Strange to say, the world knows least about the lives and sorrows of
“well-known characters” of this kind, no matter what their names might be,
and—well, there is no reason why we should bore a reader, or waste any more space
over a well-known character named Bogg.
Well, we reached the pub
about dinner-time, dropped our swags outside, had a drink, and then went into
the dinin’-room. There was a lot of jackaroo swells, that had been on a visit
to the squatter, or something, and they were sittin’ down at dinner; and they
seemed to think by their looks that we ought to have stayed outside and waited
till they were done—we was only two rough shearers, you know. There was a very
good-looking servant girl waitin’ on ’em, and she was all smiles—laughin’, and
jokin’, and chyackin’, and barrickin’ with ’em like anything.
I thought a damp
expression seemed to pass across her face when me and my mate sat down, but she
served us and said nothing—we was only two dusty swaggies, you see. Dave said
“Good day” to her when we came in, but she didn’t answer; and I could see from
the first that she’d made up her mind not to speak to us.
The swells finished, and
got up and went out, leaving me and Dave and the servant girl alone in the
room; but she didn’t open her mouth—not once. Dave winked at her once or twice
as she handed his cup, but it wasn’t no go. Dave was a good-lookin’ chap, too;
but we couldn’t get her to say a word—not one.
We finished the first
blanky course, and, while she was gettin’ our puddin’ from the side-table, Dave
says to me in a loud whisper, so’s she could hear: “Ain’t she a stunner, Joe! I
never thought there was sich fine girls on the Darlin’!”
But no; she wouldn’t
speak.
Then Dave says: “They
pitch a blanky lot about them New Englan’ gals; but I’ll back the Darlin’ girls
to lick ’em holler as far’s looks is concerned,” says Dave.
But no; she wouldn’t
speak. She wouldn’t even smile. Dave didn’t say nothing for awhile, and then he
said: “Did you hear about that red-headed barmaid at Stiffner’s goin’ to be
married to the bank manager at Bourke next month, Joe?” says Dave.
But no, not a single
word out of her; she didn’t even look up, or look as if she wanted to speak.
Dave scratched his ear
and went on with his puddin’ for awhile. Then he said: “Joe, did you hear that
yarn about young Scotty and old whatchisname’s missus?”
“Yes,” I says; “but I
think it was the daughter, not the wife, and young Scotty,” I says.
But it wasn’t no go;
that girl wouldn’t speak.
Dave shut up for a good
while, but presently I says to Dave “I see that them hoops is comin’ in again,
Dave. The paper says that this here Lady Duff had one on when she landed.”
“Yes, I heard about it,”
says Dave. “I’d like to see my wife in one, but I s’pose a woman must wear what
all the rest does.”
And do you think that
girl would speak? Not a blanky word.
We finished our second
puddin’ and fourth cup of tea, and I was just gettin’ up when Dave catches holt
on my arm, like that, and pulls me down into my chair again.
“’Old on,” whispers
Dave; “I’m goin’ to make that blanky gal speak.”
“You won’t,” I says.
“Bet you a five-pound
note,” says Dave.
“All right,” I says.
So I sits down again,
and Dave whistles to the girl, and he passes along his cup and mine. She filled
’em at once, without a word, and we got outside our fifth cup of tea each. Then
Dave jingled his spoon, and passed both cups along again. She put some hot
water in the pot this time, and, after we’d drunk another couple of cups, Dave
muttered somethin’ about drownin’ the miller.
“We want tea, not warm
water,” he growled, lookin’ sulky and passin’ along both cups again.
But she never opened her
mouth; she wouldn’t speak. She didn’t even, look cross. She made a fresh pot of
tea, and filled our cups again. She didn’t even slam the cups down, or swamp
the tea over into the saucers—which would have been quite natural, considerin’.
“I’m about done,” I said
to Dave in a low whisper. “We’ll have to give it up, I’m afraid, Dave,” I says.
“I’ll make her speak, or
bust myself,” says Dave.
And I’m blest if he
didn’t go on till I was so blanky full of tea that it brimmed over and run out
the corners of my mouth; and Dave was near as bad. At last I couldn’t drink
another teaspoonful without holding back my head, and then I couldn’t keep it
down, but had to let it run back into the blanky cup again. The girl began to
clear away at the other end of the table, and now and then she’d lay her hand
on the teapot and squint round to see if we wanted any more tea. But she never
spoke. She might have thought a lot—but she never opened her lips.
I tell you, without a
word of a lie, that we must have drunk about a dozen cups each. We made her
fill the teapot twice, and kept her waitin’ nearly an hour, but we couldn’t
make her say a word. She never said a single word to us from the time we came
in till the time we went out, nor before nor after. She’d made up her mind from
the first not to speak to us.
We had to get up and
leave our cups half full at last. We went out and sat down on our swags in the
shade against the wall, and smoked and gave that tea time to settle, and then
we got on to the track again.
There’s nothing so interesting as Geology, even
to common and ignorant people, especially when you have a bank or the side of a
cutting, studded with fossil fish and things and oysters that were stale when
Adam was fresh to illustrate by. (Remark made by Steelman, professional
wanderer, to his pal and pupil, Smith.)
The first man that
Steelman and Smith came up to on the last embankment, where they struck the new
railway line, was a heavy, gloomy, labouring man with bowyangs on and straps
round his wrists. Steelman bade him the time of day and had a few words with
him over the weather. The man of mullock gave it as his opinion that the fine
weather wouldn’t last, and seemed to take a gloomy kind of pleasure in that
reflection; he said there was more rain down yonder, pointing to the southeast,
than the moon could swallow up—the moon was in its first quarter, during which
time it is popularly believed in some parts of Maoriland that the south-easter
is most likely to be out on the wallaby and the weather bad. Steelman regarded
that quarter of the sky with an expression of gentle remonstrance mingled as it
were with a sort of fatherly indulgence, agreed mildly with the labouring man,
and seemed lost for a moment in a reverie from which he roused himself to
inquire cautiously after the boss. There was no boss, it was a co-operative
party. That chap standing over there by the dray in the end of the cutting was
their spokesman—their representative: they called him boss, but that was only
his nickname in camp. Steelman expressed his thanks and moved on towards the
cutting, followed respectfully by Smith.
Steelman wore a
snuff-coloured sac suit, a wide-awake hat, a pair of professional-looking
spectacles, and a scientific expression; there was a clerical atmosphere about
him, strengthened, however, by an air as of unconscious dignity and
superiority, born of intellect and knowledge. He carried a black bag, which was
an indispensable article in his profession in more senses than one. Smith was
decently dressed in sober tweed and looked like a man of no account, who was
mechanically devoted to his employer’s interests, pleasures, or whims.
The boss was a
decent-looking young fellow, with a good face—rather solemn—and a quiet manner.
“Good day, sir,” said
Steelman.
“Good day, sir,” said
the boss.
“Nice weather this.”
“Yes, it is, but I’m
afraid it won’t last.”
“I am afraid it will not
by the look of the sky down there,” ventured Steelman.
“No, I go mostly by the
look of our weather prophet,” said the boss with a quiet smile, indicating the
gloomy man.
“I suppose bad weather
would put you back in your work?”
“Yes, it will; we didn’t
want any bad weather just now.”
Steelman got the weather
question satisfactorily settled; then he said:
“You seem to be getting
on with the railway.”
“Oh yes, we are about
over the worst of it.”
“The worst of it?”
echoed Steelman, with mild surprise: “I should have thought you were just
coming into it,” and he pointed to the ridge ahead.
“Oh, our section doesn’t
go any further than that pole you see sticking up yonder. We had the worst of
it back there across the swamps—working up to our waists in water most of the
time, in midwinter too—and at eighteenpence a yard.”
“That was bad.”
“Yes, rather rough. Did
you come from the terminus?”
“Yes, I sent my baggage
on in the brake.”
“Commercial traveller, I
suppose?” asked the boss, glancing at Smith, who stood a little to the rear of
Steelman, seeming interested in the work.
“Oh no,” said Steelman,
smiling—“I am—well—I’m a geologist; this is my man here,” indicating Smith.
“(You may put down the bag, James, and have a smoke.) My name is Stoneleigh—you
might have heard of it.”
The boss said, “Oh,” and
then presently he added “indeed,” in an undecided tone.
There was a
pause—embarrassed on the part of the boss—he was silent not knowing what to
say. Meanwhile Steelman studied his man and concluded that he would do.
“Having a look at the
country, I suppose?” asked the boss presently.
“Yes,” said Steelman;
then after a moment’s reflection: “I am travelling for my own amusement and
improvement, and also in the interest of science, which amounts to the same
thing. I am a member of the Royal Geological Society—vice-president in fact of
a leading Australian branch;” and then, as if conscious that he had appeared
guilty of egotism, he shifted the subject a bit. “Yes. Very interesting country
this—very interesting indeed. I should like to make a stay here for a day or
so. Your work opens right into my hands. I cannot remember seeing a geological
formation which interested me so much. Look at the face of that cutting, for
instance. Why! you can almost read the history of the geological world from
yesterday—this morning as it were—beginning with the super-surface on top and
going right down through the different layers and stratas—through the vanished
ages—right down and back to the pre-historical—to the very primeval or fundamental
geological formations!” And Steelman studied the face of the cutting as if he
could read it like a book, with every layer or stratum a chapter, and every
streak a note of explanation. The boss seemed to be getting interested, and
Steelman gained confidence and proceeded to identify and classify the different
“stratas and layers,” and fix their ages, and describe the conditions and
politics of man in their different times, for the boss’s benefit.
“Now,” continued
Steelman, turning slowly from the cutting, removing his glasses, and letting
his thoughtful eyes wander casually over the general scenery—“now the first
impression that this country would leave on an ordinary intelligent mind—though
maybe unconsciously, would be as of a new country—new in a geological sense;
with patches of an older geological and vegetable formation cropping out here
and there; as for instance that clump of dead trees on that clear alluvial
slope there, that outcrop of limestone, or that timber yonder,” and he
indicated a dead forest which seemed alive and green because of the parasites.
“But the country is old—old; perhaps the oldest geological formation in the
world is to be seen here, the oldest vegetable formation in Australasia. I am
not using the words old and new in an ordinary sense, you understand, but in a
geological sense.”
The boss said, “I
understand,” and that geology must be a very interesting study.
Steelman ran his eye
meditatively over the cutting again, and turning to Smith said:
“Go up there, James, and
fetch me a specimen of that slaty outcrop you see there—just above the coeval
strata.”
It was a stiff climb and
slippery, but Smith had to do it, and he did it.
“This,” said Steelman,
breaking the rotten piece between his fingers, “belongs probably to an older
geological period than its position would indicate—a primitive sandstone level
perhaps. Its position on that layer is no doubt due to volcanic upheavals—such
disturbances, or rather the results of such disturbances, have been and are the
cause of the greatest trouble to geologists—endless errors and controversy. You
see we must study the country, not as it appears now, but as it would appear
had the natural geological growth been left to mature undisturbed; we must
restore and reconstruct such disorganized portions of the mineral kingdom, if
you understand me.”
The boss said he
understood.
Steelman found an
opportunity to wink sharply and severely at Smith, who had been careless enough
to allow his features to relapse into a vacant grin.
“It is generally known
even amongst the ignorant that rock grows—grows from the outside—but the rock
here, a specimen of which I hold in my hand, is now in the process of
decomposition; to be plain it is rotting—in an advanced stage of
decomposition—so much so that you are not able to identify it with any
geological period or formation, even as you may not be able to identify any
other extremely decomposed body.”
The boss blinked and
knitted his brow, but had the presence of mind to say: “Just so.”
“Had the rock on that cutting
been healthy—been alive, as it were—you would have had your work cut out; but
it is dead and has been dead for ages perhaps. You find less trouble in working
it than you would ordinary clay or sand, or even gravel, which formations
together are really rock in embryo—before birth as it were.”
The boss’s brow cleared.
“The country round here
is simply rotting down—simply rotting down.”
He removed his
spectacles, wiped them, and wiped his face; then his attention seemed to be
attracted by some stones at his feet. He picked one up and examined it.
“I shouldn’t wonder,” he
mused, absently, “I shouldn’t wonder if there is alluvial gold in some of these
creeks and gullies, perhaps tin or even silver, quite probably antimony.”
The boss seemed
interested.
“Can you tell me if
there is any place in this neighbourhood where I could get accommodation for
myself and my servant for a day or two?” asked Steelman presently. “I should
very much like to break my journey here.”
“Well, no,” said the
boss. “I can’t say I do—I don’t know of any place nearer than Pahiatua, and
that’s seven miles from here.”’
“I know that,” said
Steelman reflectively, “but I fully expected to have found a house of
accommodation of some sort on the way, else I would have gone on in the van.’
“Well,” said the boss.
“If you like to camp with us for to night, at least, and don’t mind roughing
it, you’ll be welcome, I’m sure.”
“If I was sure that I
would not be putting you to any trouble, or interfering in any way with your
domestic economy—-”
“No trouble at all,”
interrupted the boss. “The boys will be only too glad, and there’s an empty
whare where you can sleep. Better stay. It’s going to be a rough night.”
After tea Steelman
entertained the boss and a few of the more thoughtful members of the party with
short chatty lectures on geology and other subjects.
In the meantime Smith,
in another part of the camp, gave selections on a tin whistle, sang a song or
two, contributed, in his turn, to the sailor yarns, and ensured his popularity
for several nights at least. After several draughts of something that was
poured out of a demijohn into a pint-pot, his tongue became loosened, and he
expressed an opinion that geology was all bosh, and said if he had half his
employer’s money he’d be dashed if he would go rooting round in the mud like a
blessed old ant-eater; he also irreverently referred to his learned boss as
“Old Rocks” over there. He had a pretty easy billet of it though, he said,
taking it all round, when the weather was fine; he got a couple of notes a week
and all expenses paid, and the money was sure; he was only required to look
after the luggage and arrange for accommodation, grub out a chunk of rock now
and then, and (what perhaps was the most irksome of his duties) he had to
appear interested in old rocks and clay.
Towards midnight
Steelman and Smith retired to the unoccupied whare which had been shown them,
Smith carrying a bundle of bags, blankets, and rugs, which had been placed at
their disposal by their good-natured hosts. Smith lit a candle and proceeded to
make the beds. Steelman sat down, removed his specs and scientific expression,
placed the glasses carefully on a ledge close at hand, took a book from his
bag, and commenced to read. The volume was a cheap copy of Jules Verne’s Journey
to the Centre of the Earth. A little later there was a knock at the door.
Steelman hastily resumed the spectacles, together with the scientific
expression, took a note-book from his pocket, opened it on the table, and said,
“Come in.” One of the chaps appeared with a billy of hot coffee, two pint-pots,
and some cake. He said he thought you chaps might like a drop of coffee before
you turned in, and the boys had forgot to ask you to wait for it down in the
camp. He also wanted to know whether Mr Stoneleigh and his man would be all
right and quite comfortable for the night, and whether they had blankets
enough. There was some wood at the back of the whare and they could light a
fire if they liked.
Mr Stoneleigh expressed
his thanks and his appreciation of the kindness shown him and his servant. He
was extremely sorry to give them any trouble.
The navvy, a serious
man, who respected genius or intellect in any shape or form, said that it was
no trouble at all, the camp was very dull and the boys were always glad to have
someone come round. Then, after a brief comparison of opinions concerning the
probable duration of the weather which had arrived, they bade each other good
night, and the darkness swallowed the serious man.
Steelman turned into the
top bunk on one side and Smith took the lower on the other. Steelman had the
candle by his bunk, as usual; he lit his pipe for a final puff before going to
sleep, and held the light up for a moment so as to give Smith the full benefit
of a solemn, uncompromising wink. The wink was silently applauded and dutifully
returned by Smith. Then Steelman blew out the light, lay back, and puffed at
his pipe for a while. Presently he chuckled, and the chuckle was echoed by
Smith; by and by Steelman chuckled once more, and then Smith chuckled again.
There was silence in the darkness, and after a bit Smith chuckled twice. Then
Steelman said:
“For God’s sake give her
a rest, Smith, and give a man a show to get some sleep.”
Then the silence in the
darkness remained unbroken.
The invitation was
extended next day, and Steelman sent Smith on to see that his baggage was safe.
Smith stayed out of sight for two or three hours, and then returned and
reported all well.
They stayed on for
several days. After breakfast and when the men were going to work Steelman and
Smith would go out along the line with the black bag and poke round amongst the
“layers and stratas” in sight of the works for a while, as an evidence of good
faith; then they’d drift off casually into the bush, camp in a retired and sheltered
spot, and light a fire when the weather was cold, and Steelman would lie on the
grass and read and smoke and lay plans for the future and improve Smith’s mind
until they reckoned it was about dinner-time. And in the evening they would
come home with the black bag full of stones and bits of rock, and Steelman
would lecture on those minerals after tea.
On about the fourth
morning Steelman had a yarn with one of the men going to work. He was a lanky
young fellow with a sandy complexion, and seemingly harmless grin. In Australia
he might have been regarded as a “cove” rather than a “chap,” but there was
nothing of the “bloke” about him. Presently the cove said:
“What do you think of
the boss, Mr Stoneleigh? He seems to have taken a great fancy for you, and he’s
fair gone on geology.”
“I think he is a very
decent fellow indeed, a very intelligent young man. He seems very well read and
well informed.”
“You wouldn’t think he
was a University man,” said the cove.
“No, indeed! Is he?”
“Yes. I thought you
knew!”
Steelman knitted his
brows. He seemed slightly disturbed for the moment. He walked on a few paces in
silence and thought hard.
“What might have been
his special line?” he asked the cove.
“Why, something the same
as yours. I thought you knew. He was reckoned the best—what do you call it?—the
best minrologist in the country. He had a first-class billet in the Mines
Department, but he lost it—you know—the booze.”
“I think we will be
making a move, Smith,” said Steelman, later on, when they were private. “There’s
a little too much intellect in this camp to suit me. But we haven’t done so
bad, anyway. We’ve had three days’ good board and lodging with entertainments
and refreshments thrown in.” Then he said to himself: “We’ll stay for another
day anyway. If those beggars are having a lark with us, we’re getting the worth
of it anyway, and I’m not thin-skinned. They’re the mugs and not us, anyhow it
goes, and I can take them down before I leave.”
But on the way home he
had a talk with another man whom we might set down as a “chap.”
“I wouldn’t have thought
the boss was a college man,” said Steelman to the chap.
“A what?”
“A University
man—University education.”
“Why! Who’s been telling
you that?”
“One of your mates.”
“Oh, he’s been getting
at you. Why, it’s all the boss can do to write his own name. Now that lanky
sandy cove with the birth-mark grin—it’s him that’s had the college education.”
“I think we’ll make a
start to-morrow,” said Steelman to Smith in the privacy of their where.
“There’s too much humour and levity in this camp to suit a serious scientific
gentleman like myself.”
The chaps in the bar of
Stiffner’s shanty were talking about Macquarie, an absent shearer—who seemed,
from their conversation, to be better known than liked by them.
“I ain’t seen Macquarie
for ever so long,” remarked Box-o’-Tricks, after a pause. “Wonder where he
could ’a’ got to?”
“Jail, p’r’aps—or hell,”
growled Barcoo. “He ain’t much loss, any road.”
“My oath, yer right,
Barcoo!” interposed “Sally” Thompson. “But, now I come to think of it, Old
Awful Example there was a mate of his one time. Bless’d if the old soaker ain’t
comin’ to life again!”
A shaky,
rag-and-dirt-covered framework of a big man rose uncertainly from a corner of
the room, and, staggering forward, brushed the staring thatch back from his
forehead with one hand, reached blindly for the edge of the bar with the other,
and drooped heavily.
“Well, Awful Example,”
demanded the shanty-keeper. “What’s up with you now?”
The drunkard lifted his
head and glared wildly round with bloodshot eyes.
“Don’t you—don’t you
talk about him! Drop it, I say! DROP it!”
“What the devil’s the
matter with you now, anyway?” growled the barman. “Got ’em again? Hey?”
“Don’t you—don’t you
talk about Macquarie! He’s a mate of mine! Here! Gimme a drink!”
“Well, what if he is a
mate of yours?” sneered Barcoo. “It don’t reflec’ much credit on you—nor him
neither.”
The logic contained in
the last three words was unanswerable, and Awful Example was still fairly
reasonable, even when rum oozed out of him at every pore. He gripped the edge
of the bar with both hands, let his ruined head fall forward until it was on a
level with his temporarily rigid arms, and stared blindly at the dirty floor;
then he straightened himself up, still keeping his hold on the bar.
“Some of you chaps,” he
said huskily; “one of you chaps, in this bar to-day, called Macquarie a
scoundrel, and a loafer, and a blackguard, and—and a sneak and a liar.”
“Well, what if we did?”
said Barcoo, defiantly. “He’s all that, and a cheat into the bargain. And now,
what are you going to do about it?”
The old man swung
sideways to the bar, rested his elbow on it, and his head on his hand.
“Macquarie wasn’t a
sneak and he wasn’t a liar,” he said, in a quiet, tired tone; “and Macquarie wasn’t
a cheat!”
“Well, old man, you
needn’t get your rag out about it,” said Sally Thompson, soothingly. “P’r’aps
we was a bit too hard on him; and it isn’t altogether right, chaps, considerin’
he’s not here. But, then, you know, Awful, he might have acted straight to you
that was his mate. The meanest blank—if he is a man at all—will do that.”
“Oh, to blazes with the
old sot!” shouted Barcoo. “I gave my opinion about Macquarie, and, what’s more,
I’ll stand to it.”
“I’ve got—I’ve got a
point for the defence,” the old man went on, without heeding the interruptions.
“I’ve got a point or two for the defence.”
“Well, let’s have it,”
said Stiffner.
“In the first place—in
the first place, Macquarie never talked about no man behind his back.”
There was an uneasy movement,
and a painful silence. Barcoo reached for his drink and drank slowly; he needed
time to think—Box-o’-Tricks studied his boots—Sally Thompson looked out at the
weather—the shanty-keeper wiped the top of the bar very hard—and the rest
shifted round and “s’posed they’d try a game er cards.”
Barcoo set his glass
down very softly, pocketed his hands deeply and defiantly, and said:
“Well, what of that?
Macquarie was as strong as a bull, and the greatest bully on the river into the
bargain. He could call a man a liar to his face—and smash his face afterwards.
And he did it often, too, and with smaller men than himself.”
There was a breath of
relief in the bar.
“Do you want to make out
that I’m talking about a man behind his back?” continued Barcoo, threateningly,
to Awful Example. “You’d best take care, old man.”
“Macquarie wasn’t a
coward,” remonstrated the drunkard, softly, but in an injured tone.
“What’s up with you,
anyway?” yelled the publican. “What yer growling at? D’ye want a row? Get out
if yer can’t be agreeable!”
The boozer swung his
back to the bar, hooked himself on by his elbows, and looked vacantly out of
the door.
“I’ve got—another point
for the defence,” he muttered. “It’s always best—it’s always best to keep the
last point to—the last.”
“Oh, Lord! Well, out
with it! Out with it!”
“Macquarie’s dead!
That—that’s what it is!”
Everyone moved uneasily:
Sally Thompson turned the other side to the bar, crossed one leg behind the
other, and looked down over his hip at the sole and heel of his elastic-side—the
barman rinsed the glasses vigorously—Longbones shuffled and dealt on the top of
a cask, and some of the others gathered round him and got interested—Barcoo
thought he heard his horse breaking away, and went out to see to it, followed
by Box-o’-Tricks and a couple more, who thought that it might be one of their
horses.
Someone—a tall, gaunt,
determined-looking bushman, with square features and haggard grey eyes—had
ridden in unnoticed through the scrub to the back of the shanty and dismounted
by the window.
When Barcoo and the
others re-entered the bar it soon became evident that Sally Thompson had been
thinking, for presently he came to the general rescue as follows:
“There’s a blessed lot
of tommy-rot about dead people in this world—a lot of damned old-woman
nonsense. There’s more sympathy wasted over dead and rotten skunks than there
is justice done to straight, honest-livin’ chaps. I don’t b’lieve in this gory
sentiment about the dead at the expense of the living. I b’lieve in justice for
the livin’—and the dead too, for that matter—but justice for the livin’.
Macquarie was a bad egg, and it don’t alter the case if he was dead a thousand
times.”
There was another breath
of relief in the bar, and presently somebody said: “Yer tight, Sally!”
“Good for you, Sally,
old man!” cried Box-o’-Tricks, taking it up. “An’, besides, I don’t b’lieve
Macquarie is dead at all. He’s always dyin’, or being reported dead, and then
turnin’ up again. Where did you hear about it, Awful?”
The Example ruefully
rubbed a corner of his roof with the palm of his hand.
“There’s—there’s a lot
in what you say, Sally Thompson,” he admitted slowly, totally ignoring
Box-o’-Tricks. “But—but—-’
“Oh, we’ve had enough of
the old fool,” yelled Barcoo. “Macquarie was a spieler, and any man that ud be
his mate ain’t much better.”
“Here, take a drink and
dry up, yer ole hass!” said the man behind the bar, pushing a bottle and glass
towards the drunkard. “D’ye want a row?”
The old man took the
bottle and glass in his shaking bands and painfully poured out a drink.
“There’s a lot in what
Sally Thompson says,” he went on, obstinately, “but—but,” he added in a
strained tone, “there’s another point that I near forgot, and none of you
seemed to think of it—not even Sally Thompson nor—nor Box-o’-Tricks there.”
Stiffner turned his
back, and Barcoo spat viciously and impatiently.
“Yes,” drivelled the
drunkard, “I’ve got another point for—for the defence—of my mate, Macquarie—”
“Oh, out with it! Spit
it out, for God’s sake, or you’ll bust!” roared Stiffner. “What the blazes is
it?”
“HIS MATE’S ALIVE!”
yelled the old man. “Macquarie’s mate’s alive! That’s what it is!”
He reeled back from the
bar, dashed his glass and hat to the boards, gave his pants, a hitch by the
waistband that almost lifted him off his feet, and tore at his shirt-sleeves.
“Make a ring, boys,” he
shouted. “His mate’s alive! Put up your hands, Barcoo! By God, his mate’s
alive!”
Someone had turned his
horse loose at the rear and had been standing by the back door for the last
five minutes. Now he slipped quietly in.
“Keep the old fool off,
or he’ll get hurt,” snarled Barcoo.
Stiffner jumped the
counter. There were loud, hurried words of remonstrance, then some
stump-splitting oaths and a scuffle, consequent upon an attempt to chuck the
old man out. Then a crash. Stiffner and Box-o’-Tricks were down, two others
were holding Barcoo back, and someone had pinned Awful Example by the shoulders
from behind.
“Let me go!” he yelled,
too blind with passion to notice the movements of surprise among the men before
him. “Let me go! I’ll smash—any man—that—that says a word again’ a mate of mine
behind his back. Barcoo, I’ll have your blood! Let me go! I’ll, I’ll, I’ll—
Who’s holdin’ me? You—you—-”
“It’s Macquarie, old
mate!” said a quiet voice.
Barcoo thought he heard
his horse again, and went out in a hurry. Perhaps he thought that the horse
would get impatient and break loose if he left it any longer, for he jumped
into the saddle and rode off.
Rough, squarish face,
curly auburn wig, bushy grey eyebrows and moustache, and grizzly stubble—eyes
that reminded one of Dampier the actor. He was a squatter of the old order—new
chum, swagman, drover, shearer, super, pioneer, cocky, squatter, and finally
bank victim. He had been through it all, and knew all about it.
He had been in
parliament, and wanted too again; but the men mistrusted him as Thompson, M.P.,
though they swore by him as old Baldy Thompson the squatter. His hobby was
politics, and his politics were badly boxed. When he wasn’t cursing the banks
and government he cursed the country. He cursed the Labour leaders at
intervals, and seemed to think that he could run the unions better than they
could. Also, he seemed to think that he could run parliament better than any
premier. He was generally voted a hard case, which term is mostly used in a
kindly sense out back.
He was always grumbling
about the country. If a shearer or rouseabout was good at argument, and a bit
of a politician, he hadn’t to slave much at Thompson’s shed, for Baldy would
argue with him all day and pay for it.
“I can’t put on any more
men,” he’d say to travellers. “I can’t put on a lot of men to make big cheques
when there’s no money in the bank to pay ’em—and I’ve got all I can do to get
tucker for the family. I shore nothing but burrs and grass-seed last season,
and it didn’t pay carriage. I’m just sending away a flock of sheep now, and I
won’t make threepence a head on ’em. I had twenty thousand in the bank season
before last, and now I can’t count on one. I’ll have to roll up my swag and go
on the track myself next.”
“All right, Baldy,”
they’d say, “git out your blooming swag and come along with us, old man; we’ll
stick to you and see you through.”
“I swear I’d show you
round first,” he’d reply. “Go up to the store and get what rations you want.
You can camp in the huts to-night, and I’ll see you in the morning.”
But most likely he’d
find his way over after tea, and sit on his heels in the cool outside the hut,
and argue with the swagmen about unionism and politics. And he’d argue all
night if he met his match.
The track by Baldy
Thompson’s was reckoned as a good tucker track, especially when a dissolution
of parliament was threatened. Then the guileless traveller would casually let
Baldy know that he’d got his name on the electoral list, and show some interest
in Baldy’s political opinions, and oppose them at first, and finally agree with
them and see a lot in them—be led round to Baldy’s way of thinking, in fact;
and ultimately depart, rejoicing, with a full nose-bag, and a quiet grin for
his mate.
There are many camp-fire
yarns about old Baldy Thompson.
One New Year the
shearers—shearing stragglers—roused him in the dead of night and told him that
the shed was on fire. He came out in his shirt and without his wig. He sacked
them all there and then, but of course they went to work as usual next morning.
There is something sad and pathetic about that old practical joke—as indeed
there is with all bush jokes. There seems a quiet sort of sadness always
running through outback humour—whether alleged or otherwise.
There’s the usual yarn
about a jackaroo mistaking Thompson for a brother rouser, and asking him
whether old Baldy was about anywhere, and Baldy said:
“Why, are you looking
for a job?”
“Yes, do you think I
stand any show? What sort of a boss is Baldy?”
“You’d tramp from here
to Adelaide,” said Baldy, “and north to the Gulf country, and wouldn’t find a
worse. He’s the meanest squatter in Australia. The damned old crawler! I
grafted like a nigger for him for over fifty years”—Baldy was over sixty—“and
now the old skunk won’t even pay me the last two cheques he owes me—says the
bank has got everything he had—that’s an old cry of his, the damned old sneak;
seems to expect me to go short to keep his wife and family and relations in
comfort, and by God I’ve done it for the last thirty or forty years, and I
might go on the track to-morrow worse off than the meanest old whaler that ever
humped bluey. Don’t you have anything to do with Scabby Thompson, or you’ll be
sorry for it. Better tramp to hell than take a job from him.”
“Well, I think I’ll move
on. Would I stand any show for some tucker?”
“Him! He wouldn’t give a
dog a crust, and like as not he’d get you run in for trespass if he caught you
camping on the run. But come along to the store and I’ll give you enough tucker
to carry you on.”
He patronized literature
and arts, too, though in an awkward, furtive way. We remember how we once
turned up at the station hard up and short of tucker, and how we entertained
Baldy with some of his own ideas as ours—having been posted beforehand by our
mate—and how he told us to get some rations and camp in the hut and see him in
the morning.
And we saw him in the
morning, had another yarn with him, agreed and sympathized with him some more,
were convinced on one or two questions which we had failed to see at first,
cursed things in chorus with him, and casually mentioned that we expected soon
to get some work on a political paper.
And at last he went
inside and brought out a sovereign. “Wrap this in a piece of paper and put it
in your pocket, and don’t lose it,” he said.
But we learnt afterwards
that the best way to get along with Baldy, and secure his good will, was to
disagree with him on every possible point.
These were ten of us
there on the wharf when our first mate left for Maoriland, he having been
forced to leave Sydney because he could not get anything like regular work, nor
anything like wages for the work he could get. He was a carpenter and joiner, a
good tradesman and a rough diamond. He had got married and had made a hard
fight for it during the last two years or so, but the result only petrified his
conviction that “a lovely man could get no blessed show in this condemned
country,” as he expressed it; so he gave it best at last—“chucked it up,” as he
said—left his wife with her people and four pounds ten, until such time as he
could send for her—and left himself with his box of tools, a pair of hands that
could use them, a steerage ticket, and thirty shillings.
We turned up to see him
off. There were ten of us all told and about twice as many shillings all
counted. He was the first of the old push to go—we use the word push in its
general sense, and we called ourselves the mountain push because we had worked
in the tourist towns a good deal—he was the first of the mountain push to go;
and we felt somehow, and with a vague kind of sadness or uneasiness, that this
was the beginning of the end of old times and old things. We were plasterers,
bricklayers, painters, a carpenter, a labourer, and a plumber, and were all
suffering more or less—mostly more—and pretty equally, because of the dearth of
regular graft, and the consequent frequency of the occasions on which we didn’t
hold it—the “it” being the price of one or more long beers. We had worked
together on jobs in the city and up-country, especially in the country, and had
had good times together when things were locomotive, as Jack put it; and we
always managed to worry along cheerfully when things were “stationary.” On more
than one big job up the country our fortnightly spree was a local institution
while it lasted, a thing that was looked forward to by all parties, whether
immediately concerned or otherwise (and all were concerned more or less), a
thing to be looked back to and talked over until next pay-day came. It was a
matter for anxiety and regret to the local business people and publicans, and
loafers and spielers, when our jobs were finished and we left.
There were between us
the bonds of graft, of old times, of poverty, of vagabondage and sin, and in
spite of all the right-thinking person may think, say or write, there was
between us that sympathy which in our times and conditions is the strongest and
perhaps the truest of all human qualities, the sympathy of drink. We were
drinking mates together. We were wrong-thinking persons too, and that was
another bond of sympathy between us.
There were cakes of
tobacco, and books, and papers, and several flasks of “rye-buck”—our push being
distantly related to a publican who wasn’t half a bad sort—to cheer and comfort
our departing mate on his uncertain way; and these tokens of mateship and the
sake of auld lang syne were placed casually in his bunk or slipped
unostentatiously into his hand or pockets, and received by him in short
eloquent silence (sort of an aside silence), and partly as a matter of course.
Every now and then there would be a surreptitious consultation between two of
us and a hurried review of finances, and then one would slip quietly ashore and
presently return supremely unconscious of a book, magazine, or parcel of fruit
bulging out of his pocket.
You may battle round
with mates for many years, and share and share alike, good times or hard, and
find the said mates true and straight through it all; but it is their little
thoughtful attentions when you are going away, that go right down to the bottom
of your heart, and lift it up and make you feel inclined—as you stand alone by
the rail when the sun goes down on the sea—to write or recite poetry and
otherwise make a fool of yourself.
We helped our mate on
board with his box, and inspected his bunk, and held a consultation over the
merits or otherwise of its position, and got in his way and that of the
under-steward and the rest of the crew right down to the captain, and
superintended our old chum’s general arrangements, and upset most of them, and
interviewed various members of the crew as to when the boat would start for
sure, and regarded their statements with suspicion, and calculated on our own
account how long it would take to get the rest of the cargo aboard, and dragged
our mate ashore for a final drink, and found that we had “plenty of time to
slip ashore for a parting wet” so often that his immediate relations grew
anxious and officious, and the universe began to look good, and kind, and
happy, and bully, and jolly, and grand, and glorious to us, and we forgave the
world everything wherein it had not acted straight towards us, and were filled
full of love for our kind of both genders—for the human race at large—and with
an almost irresistible longing to go aboard, and stay at all hazards, and sail
along with our mate. We had just time “to slip ashore and have another” when
the gangway was withdrawn and the steamer began to cast off. Then a rush down
the wharf, a hurried and confused shaking of hands, and our mate was snatched
aboard. The boat had been delayed, and we had waited for three hours, and had
seen our chum nearly every day for years, and now we found we hadn’t begun to
say half what we wanted to say to him. We gripped his hand in turn over the
rail, as the green tide came between, till there was a danger of one mate being
pulled aboard—which he wouldn’t have minded much—or the other mate pulled
ashore, or one or both yanked overboard. We cheered the captain and cheered the
crew and the passengers—there was a big crowd of them going and a bigger crowd
of enthusiastic friends on the wharf—and our mate on the forward hatch; we
cheered the land they were going to and the land they had left behind, and sang
“Auld Lang Syne” and “He’s a Jolly Good Fellow” (and so yelled all of us) and
“Home Rule for Ireland Evermore”—which was, I don’t know why, an old song of
ours. And we shouted parting injunctions and exchanged old war cries, the
meanings of which were only known to us, and we were guilty of such riotous
conduct that, it being now Sunday morning, one or two of the quieter members
suggested we had better drop down to about half-a-gale, as there was a
severe-looking old sergeant of police with an eye on us; but once, in the
middle of a heart-stirring chorus of “Auld Lang Sync,” Jack, my especial chum,
paused for breath and said to me:
“It’s all right, Joe,
the trap’s joining in.”
And so he was—and
leading.
But I well remember the
hush that fell on that, and several other occasions, when the steamer had
passed the point.
And so our first mate
sailed away out under the rising moon and under the morning stars. He is
settled down in Maoriland now, in a house of his own, and has a family and a
farm; but somehow, in the bottom of our hearts, we don’t like to think of
things like this, for they don’t fit in at all with “Auld Lang Syne.”’
There were six or seven
of us on the wharf to see our next mate go. His ultimate destination was known
to himself and us only. We had pickets at the shore end of the wharf, and we
kept him quiet and out of sight; the send-off was not noisy, but the hand-grips
were very tight and the sympathy deep. He was running away from debt, and
wrong, and dishonour, a drunken wife, and other sorrows, and we knew it all.
Two went next—to try
their luck in Western Australia; they were plasterers. Ten of us turned up
again, the push having been reinforced by one or two new members and an old one
who had been absent on the first occasion. It was a glorious send-off, and only
two found beds that night—the government supplied the beds.
And one by one and two
by two they have gone from the wharf since then. Jack went to-day; he was
perhaps the most irreclaimable of us all—a hard case where all cases were hard;
and I loved him best—anyway I know that, wherever Jack goes, there will be
someone who will barrack for me to the best of his ability (which is by no
means to be despised as far as barracking is concerned), and resent, with
enthusiasm and force if he deems it necessary, the barest insinuation which
might be made to the effect that I could write a bad line if I tried, or be
guilty of an action which would not be straight according to the rules of
mateship.
Ah well! I am beginning
to think it is time I emigrated too; I’ll pull myself together and battle round
and raise the price of a steerage ticket, and maybe a pound or two over. There
may not be anybody to see me off, but some of the boys are sure to be on the
wharf or platform “over there,” when I arrive. Lord! I almost hear them hailing
now! and won’t I yell back! and perhaps there won’t be a wake over old times in
some cosy bar parlour, or camp, in Western Australia or Maoriland some night in
a year to come.
NOTES ON AUSTRALIANISMS.
Based on my own speech
over the years, with some checking in the dictionaries. Not all of these are
peculiar to Australian slang, but are important in Lawson’s stories, and carry
overtones.
bagman: commercial traveler
Bananaland:
Queensland
billabong:
Based on an aboriginal word. Sometimes used for an anabranch (a bend in a river
cut off by a new channel, but more often used for one that, in dry season or
droughts especially, is cut off at either or both ends from the main stream. It
is often just a muddy pool, and may indeed dry up completely.
billy: quintessentially
Australian. It is like (or may even be made out of) a medium-sized can, with
wire handles and a lid. Used to boil water. If for tea, the leaves are added
into the billy itself. The billy may be swung (‘to make the leaves settle’) or
a eucalyptus twig place across the top, more ritual than pragmatic. These
stories are supposedly told while the billy is suspended over the fire at
night, at the end of a tramp. (Also used in want of other things, for cooking)
blackfellow (also, blackman): condescending for Australian Aboriginal.
blackleg: also scab. Someone who
is employed to cross a union picket line to break a workers’ strike. As Molly
Ivins said, she was brought up on the three great commandments: do not lie; do not steal; never cross a picket line.
blanky or —-:
Fill in your own favourite word. Usually however used for “bloody.”
blucher: a kind of half-boot
(named after the Austrian general) Leberecht von Blücherblued: of a wages cheque: all spent extravagantly—and
rapidly.
bluey: swag. Supposedly
because blankets were mostly blue (so Lawson)
boggabri: Probably Aboriginal
for several low herbs, esp. Amaranthus mitchelli, Chenopodium pumilio, C.
carinatum and Commelina cyanea (scurvy grass); also a town in NSW. [Australian
National Dictionary, OUP 1988] What then is a ‘tater-marrer’ (potato-marrow?).
Any help?
bowyangs: ties (cord, rope,
cloth) put around trouser legs below knee
bullocky: Bullock driver. A man
who drove teams of bullocks yoked to wagons carrying, e.g., wool bales or
provisions. Proverbially rough and foul mouthed.
bush: originally referred to
the low tangled scrubs of the semi-desert regions (‘mulga’ and ‘mallee’), and
hence equivalent to “outback”. Now used generally for remote rural areas (“the
bush”) and scrubby forest.
Bushfire/wild fires: whether forest fires or grass fires.
bushman/bushwoman: someone who lives an isolated existence, far from cities, “in
the bush”. (today: a “bushy”)
bushranger: an
Australian “highwayman”, who lived in the ‘bush’— scrub—and attacked especially
gold carrying coaches and banks. Romanticised as anti-authoritarian Robin Hood
figures—cf. Ned Kelly—but usually very violent.
cheque: wages for a full
season of sheep-shearing; meant to last until the next year, including a
family, but often ‘blued’ in a ‘spree’
chyack: (chy-ike) like
chaffing; to tease, mildly abuse
cocky: a farmer, esp. dairy
farmers (= ‘cow-cockies’)
cubby-house, or cubby: Children’s playhouse (“Wendy house” is commercial form))
Darlinghurst:
Sydney suburb, where the gaol was in those days
dead marine:
empty beer bottle
dossing: sleeping rough or
poorly (as in a “doss-house”)
doughboy: kind of dumpling
drover: one who “droves”
cattle or sheep.
droving: driving on horseback
cattle or sheep from where they were fattened to a a city, or later, a
rail-head.
drown the miller: to add too much water to flour when cooking. Used metaphorically
in story.
fossick: pick over areas for
gold. Not mining as such.
half-caser: Two
shillings and sixpence. As a coin, a half-crown.
half-sov.: a coin worth half a
pound (sovereign)
Gladesville:
Sydney suburb, where the mental hospital used to be
goanna: various kinds of
monitor lizards. Can be quite a size.
Homebush: Saleyard, market area
in Sydney
humpy: originally an
aboriginal shelter (=gunyah); extended to a settler’s hut
jackaroo: (Jack + kangaroo;
sometimes jackeroo)—someone, in early days a new immigrant from England,
learning to work on a sheep/cattle station (U.S. “ranch”)
jumbuck: a sheep (best known
from Waltzing Matilda: “where’s that jolly jumbuck, you’ve got in your tucker
bag”.
larrikin: anything from a
disrespectful young man to a violent member of a gang (“push”). Was considered
a major social problem in Sydney of the 1880’s to 1900. The Bulletin, a
magazine in which much of Lawson was published, spoke of the “aggressive,
soft-hatted “stoush brigade”. Anyone today who is disrespectful of authority or
convention is said to show the larrikin element in the Australian character.
larrikiness:
jocular feminine form
leather-jacket:
kind of pancake (more often a fish, these days)
lucerne: cattle feed-a
leguminous plant, alfalfa in US
lumper: labourer; esp. on
wharves?
mallee: dwarfed eucalyptus
trees growing in very poor soil and under harsh rainfall conditions. Usually
many stems emerging from the ground, creating a low thicket.
Maoriland:
Lawson’s name for New Zealand marine, dead: see ‘dead marine’
mooching: wandering idly, not
going anywhere in particular
mug: gullible person, a
con-man’s ‘mark’ (potential victim)
mulga: Acacia sp. (“wattle”
in Australian) especially Acacia aneura; growing in semi-desert conditions.
Used as a description of such a harsh region.
mullock: the tailings left
after gold has been removed. In Lawson generally mud (alluvial) rather than
rock
myall: aboriginal living in a
traditional pre-conquest manner
narked: annoyed
navvies: labourers (especially
making roads, railways; originally canals, thus from ‘navigators’)
nobbler: a drink
nuggety: compact but strong
physique; small but well-muscled
pannikin: metal mug
peckish: hungry—usually only
mildly so. Use here is thus ironic.
poley: a dehorned cow
poddy-(calf): a
calf separated from its mother but still needing milk
rouseabout:
labourer in a (sheep) shearing shed. Considered to be, as far as any work is,
unskilled labour.
sawney: silly, gormless
selector: small farmer who under
the “Selection Act (Alienation of Land Act”, Sydney 1862 could settle on a few
acres of land and farm it, with hope of buying it. As the land had been leased
by “squatters” to run sheep, they were NOT popular. The land was usually pretty
poor, and there was little transport to get food to market, many, many failed.
(The same mistake was made after WWI when returned soldiers were given land to
starve on.)
shanty: besides common meaning
of shack it refers to an unofficial (and illegal) grog-shop; in contrast to the
legal ‘pub’.
spieler: con artist
sliprails: in
lieu of a gate, the rails of a fence may be loosely socketed into posts, so
that they may ‘let down’ (i.e. one end pushed in socket, the other end resting
on the ground). See ‘A Day on a Selection’
spree: prolonged drinking
bout—days, weeks.
stoush: a fight
strike: perhaps the Shearers’
strike in Barcaldine, Queensland, 1891 [gjc]
sundowner: a
swagman (see) who is NOT looking for work, but a “handout”. Lawson explains the
term as referring to someone who turns up at a station at sundown, just in time
for “tea” i.e. the evening meal. In view of the Great Depression of the time,
these expressions of attitude are probably unfair, but the attitudes are common
enough even today.
Surry Hills:
Sydney inner suburb (home for this transcriber)
swagman (swaggy): Generally, anyone who is walking in the “outback” with a swag.
(See “The Romance of the Swag” in Children of the Bush, also a PG Etext) Lawson
also restricts it at times to those whom he considers to be tramps, not looking
for work but for “handouts”. See ‘travellers’.
’swelp: mild oath of
affirmation = “so help me [God]”
travellers:
“shearers and rouseabouts travelling for work” (Lawson).
whare: small Maori house—is
it used here for European equivalent? Help anyone?
whipping the cat: drunk
Comments
Post a Comment